- 
		AuthorSearch Results
- 
		
			
January 13, 2023 at 6:42 pm #6377In reply to: Orbs of MadjourneysThe four adventurers, Zara, Xavier, Yasmin, and Youssef, stood in awe in front of the giant orb that seemed to open up to another realm. The light emanating from the orb was so bright, it was as if the sun was just inches away. The stalactites that hung from the cave’s ceiling sparkled like diamonds in the light, adding to the otherworldly beauty of the scene.  “Look around,” Yasmin said, her voice filled with wonder. “Beauty is everywhere. You only have to look to see it.” The group was ready for an adventure and they knew that the orb in front of them was the key to their mad journey. Xavier stepped forward and reached out to touch the orb. As soon as his fingers made contact with the surface, the orb lit up and a pathway formed, leading into the brightly lit realm. The group stepped through the pathway and found themselves in a world unlike anything they had ever seen before. The sky was a vibrant shade of purple and the ground was covered in a lush, green grass. The orb they had just passed through was now behind them, but in front of them were smaller orbs, each one leading to a different path. Zara, Xavier, Yasmin, and Youssef looked at each other with excitement in their eyes. They knew that this was just the beginning of their mad journey. Xavier stepped forward and reached out to touch the orb. As soon as his fingers made contact with the surface, the orb lit up and a pathway formed, leading into the brightly lit realm.   They walked into a small village, where they were greeted by a group of people wearing clothes that looked like they were from the 1920s. The people told them that they were in the land of the “Quirks”, a place where everything and everyone was a little bit different, and that they had to find the “Key of Quirks” in order to leave the land. The four friends, Zara, Xavier, Yasmin, and Youssef, soon found themselves on a mission to find the “Key of Quirks” that would allow them to leave the land of the Quirks. As they walked through a forest, they came across a fork in the road. Zara, the leader of the group, turned to the others and said, “Alright, we need to decide which way to go. Yasmin, what’s the plan?” Yasmin, the brains of the group, replied, “I suggest we take the left path. According to the map I found, it leads to the Quirky Quests area, where we might find the key.” Xavier, the joker of the group, chimed in, “I vote for the right path. It’s the road less traveled, and you know what they say, ‘the road less traveled is the road to adventure’ ” Youssef, the muscle of the group, added, “I don’t care which way we go, I just want to find some food. I’m starving!” Zara rolled her eyes, “Xavier, your jokes are getting old. And Youssef, we’re on a mission, we can’t just focus on food.” Xavier grinned, “But Zaraloon, where’s the fun in that?” Yasmin interjected, “Can we please focus? We need to make a decision. I propose we split up, Zara and I will take the left path, and Xavier and Youssef can take the right path.” Youssef nodded, “Yeah, that sounds like a good idea. That way, if we don’t find the key, at least we’ll have found some food.” Xavier grinned, “Sounds like a plan, Xavimunk is ready for adventure!” Zara shook her head with a smile, “Alright, let’s do this.” The group split up, and as they walked away, they could be heard playfully bantering and joking with each other. Each one exemplifying their unique and distinct characters. January 10, 2023 at 10:15 pm #6363In reply to: Train your subjective AI – text versiontry another short story, with a bit of drama with the following words: road form charlton smooth everyone cottage hanging rush offer agree subject district included appear sha returning grattidge nottingham 848 tetbury chicken It was a cold and gloomy day in the small village of Tetbury, nestled in the picturesque Cotswolds district. A young woman named Sha was returning home to her cottage after a long and tiring journey. She had been away visiting her family in Nottingham and was looking forward to relaxing in her cozy home. As she walked down the dirt road that led to her cottage, she couldn’t help but notice that something was off. Her neighbor, Mr. Charlton, was outside hanging laundry and he didn’t acknowledge her as she walked by. Sha thought it was strange, as he was usually a friendly and sociable person. When Sha arrived at her cottage, she was shocked to find that it had been broken into. The front door was ajar and the inside of her home had been ransacked. Sha immediately panicked and called the police, who arrived on the scene shortly thereafter. The police officers, including Inspector Grattidge, took Sha’s statement and began to investigate the crime. They discovered that a group of burglars had been operating in the area, targeting homes and businesses in the district. The burglars had been known for their smooth operations and their ability to strike quickly, which led to their nickname “The Smooth Operators”. As Sha waited for the police to finish their investigation, she couldn’t shake the feeling that something was not right. She had always thought of Tetbury as a safe and friendly place, and she couldn’t believe that something like this could happen in her community. As the investigation went on, the police found out that the Smooth operators have been targeting houses with no security cameras, but Sha’s cottage was an exception, the police were able to find out that the group offered to pay a considerable sum of money to the people who reported the locations of the houses that had no cameras, and it was Mr. Charlton who was the informant and he even rushed to Sha’s cottage as soon as he knew the police was investigating the case, He was arrested for the crime and Sha was heartbroken to find out that her once friendly neighbor had betrayed her. Feeling violated and betrayed, Sha decided that she could no longer stay in the village and she put her cottage up for sale. She packed up her belongings and moved away, leaving behind the memories of her peaceful home and the community she had once thought of as her own. The end. December 6, 2022 at 2:17 pm #6350In reply to: Family Stories From The Other Side ~ Book TwoTransportation Isaac Stokes 1804-1877 Isaac was born in Churchill, Oxfordshire in 1804, and was the youngest brother of my 4X great grandfather Thomas Stokes. The Stokes family were stone masons for generations in Oxfordshire and Gloucestershire, and Isaac’s occupation was a mason’s labourer in 1834 when he was sentenced at the Lent Assizes in Oxford to fourteen years transportation for stealing tools. Churchill where the Stokes stonemasons came from: on 31 July 1684 a fire destroyed 20 houses and many other buildings, and killed four people. The village was rebuilt higher up the hill, with stone houses instead of the old timber-framed and thatched cottages. The fire was apparently caused by a baker who, to avoid chimney tax, had knocked through the wall from her oven to her neighbour’s chimney. Isaac stole a pick axe, the value of 2 shillings and the property of Thomas Joyner of Churchill; a kibbeaux and a trowel value 3 shillings the property of Thomas Symms; a hammer and axe value 5 shillings, property of John Keen of Sarsden. (The word kibbeaux seems to only exists in relation to Isaac Stokes sentence and whoever was the first to write it was perhaps being creative with the spelling of a kibbo, a miners or a metal bucket. This spelling is repeated in the criminal reports and the newspaper articles about Isaac, but nowhere else). In March 1834 the Removal of Convicts was announced in the Oxford University and City Herald: Isaac Stokes and several other prisoners were removed from the Oxford county gaol to the Justitia hulk at Woolwich “persuant to their sentences of transportation at our Lent Assizes”. via digitalpanopticon: Hulks were decommissioned (and often unseaworthy) ships that were moored in rivers and estuaries and refitted to become floating prisons. The outbreak of war in America in 1775 meant that it was no longer possible to transport British convicts there. Transportation as a form of punishment had started in the late seventeenth century, and following the Transportation Act of 1718, some 44,000 British convicts were sent to the American colonies. The end of this punishment presented a major problem for the authorities in London, since in the decade before 1775, two-thirds of convicts at the Old Bailey received a sentence of transportation – on average 283 convicts a year. As a result, London’s prisons quickly filled to overflowing with convicted prisoners who were sentenced to transportation but had no place to go. To increase London’s prison capacity, in 1776 Parliament passed the “Hulks Act” (16 Geo III, c.43). Although overseen by local justices of the peace, the hulks were to be directly managed and maintained by private contractors. The first contract to run a hulk was awarded to Duncan Campbell, a former transportation contractor. In August 1776, the Justicia, a former transportation ship moored in the River Thames, became the first prison hulk. This ship soon became full and Campbell quickly introduced a number of other hulks in London; by 1778 the fleet of hulks on the Thames held 510 prisoners. 
 Demand was so great that new hulks were introduced across the country. There were hulks located at Deptford, Chatham, Woolwich, Gosport, Plymouth, Portsmouth, Sheerness and Cork.The Justitia via rmg collections:  Convicts perform hard labour at the Woolwich Warren. The hulk on the river is the ‘Justitia’. Prisoners were kept on board such ships for months awaiting deportation to Australia. The ‘Justitia’ was a 260 ton prison hulk that had been originally moored in the Thames when the American War of Independence put a stop to the transportation of criminals to the former colonies. The ‘Justitia’ belonged to the shipowner Duncan Campbell, who was the Government contractor who organized the prison-hulk system at that time. Campbell was subsequently involved in the shipping of convicts to the penal colony at Botany Bay (in fact Port Jackson, later Sydney, just to the north) in New South Wales, the ‘first fleet’ going out in 1788. While searching for records for Isaac Stokes I discovered that another Isaac Stokes was transported to New South Wales in 1835 as well. The other one was a butcher born in 1809, sentenced in London for seven years, and he sailed on the Mary Ann. Our Isaac Stokes sailed on the Lady Nugent, arriving in NSW in April 1835, having set sail from England in December 1834. Lady Nugent was built at Bombay in 1813. She made four voyages under contract to the British East India Company (EIC). She then made two voyages transporting convicts to Australia, one to New South Wales and one to Van Diemen’s Land (Tasmania). (via Wikipedia) via freesettlerorfelon website: On 20 November 1834, 100 male convicts were transferred to the Lady Nugent from the Justitia Hulk and 60 from the Ganymede Hulk at Woolwich, all in apparent good health. The Lady Nugent departed Sheerness on 4 December 1834. SURGEON OLIVER SPROULE Oliver Sproule kept a Medical Journal from 7 November 1834 to 27 April 1835. He recorded in his journal the weather conditions they experienced in the first two weeks: ‘In the course of the first week or ten days at sea, there were eight or nine on the sick list with catarrhal affections and one with dropsy which I attribute to the cold and wet we experienced during that period beating down channel. Indeed the foremost berths in the prison at this time were so wet from leaking in that part of the ship, that I was obliged to issue dry beds and bedding to a great many of the prisoners to preserve their health, but after crossing the Bay of Biscay the weather became fine and we got the damp beds and blankets dried, the leaks partially stopped and the prison well aired and ventilated which, I am happy to say soon manifested a favourable change in the health and appearance of the men. Besides the cases given in the journal I had a great many others to treat, some of them similar to those mentioned but the greater part consisted of boils, scalds, and contusions which would not only be too tedious to enter but I fear would be irksome to the reader. There were four births on board during the passage which did well, therefore I did not consider it necessary to give a detailed account of them in my journal the more especially as they were all favourable cases. Regularity and cleanliness in the prison, free ventilation and as far as possible dry decks turning all the prisoners up in fine weather as we were lucky enough to have two musicians amongst the convicts, dancing was tolerated every afternoon, strict attention to personal cleanliness and also to the cooking of their victuals with regular hours for their meals, were the only prophylactic means used on this occasion, which I found to answer my expectations to the utmost extent in as much as there was not a single case of contagious or infectious nature during the whole passage with the exception of a few cases of psora which soon yielded to the usual treatment. A few cases of scurvy however appeared on board at rather an early period which I can attribute to nothing else but the wet and hardships the prisoners endured during the first three or four weeks of the passage. I was prompt in my treatment of these cases and they got well, but before we arrived at Sydney I had about thirty others to treat.’ The Lady Nugent arrived in Port Jackson on 9 April 1835 with 284 male prisoners. Two men had died at sea. The prisoners were landed on 27th April 1835 and marched to Hyde Park Barracks prior to being assigned. Ten were under the age of 14 years. The Lady Nugent: Isaac’s distinguishing marks are noted on various criminal registers and record books: “Height in feet & inches: 5 4; Complexion: Ruddy; Hair: Light brown; Eyes: Hazel; Marks or Scars: Yes [including] DEVIL on lower left arm, TSIS back of left hand, WS lower right arm, MHDW back of right hand.” Another includes more detail about Isaac’s tattoos: “Two slight scars right side of mouth, 2 moles above right breast, figure of the devil and DEVIL and raised mole, lower left arm; anchor, seven dots half moon, TSIS and cross, back of left hand; a mallet, door post, A, mans bust, sun, WS, lower right arm; woman, MHDW and shut knife, back of right hand.”  From How tattoos became fashionable in Victorian England (2019 article in TheConversation by Robert Shoemaker and Zoe Alkar): “Historical tattooing was not restricted to sailors, soldiers and convicts, but was a growing and accepted phenomenon in Victorian England. Tattoos provide an important window into the lives of those who typically left no written records of their own. As a form of “history from below”, they give us a fleeting but intriguing understanding of the identities and emotions of ordinary people in the past. 
 As a practice for which typically the only record is the body itself, few systematic records survive before the advent of photography. One exception to this is the written descriptions of tattoos (and even the occasional sketch) that were kept of institutionalised people forced to submit to the recording of information about their bodies as a means of identifying them. This particularly applies to three groups – criminal convicts, soldiers and sailors. Of these, the convict records are the most voluminous and systematic.
 Such records were first kept in large numbers for those who were transported to Australia from 1788 (since Australia was then an open prison) as the authorities needed some means of keeping track of them.”On the 1837 census Isaac was working for the government at Illiwarra, New South Wales. This record states that he arrived on the Lady Nugent in 1835. There are three other indent records for an Isaac Stokes in the following years, but the transcriptions don’t provide enough information to determine which Isaac Stokes it was. In April 1837 there was an abscondment, and an arrest/apprehension in May of that year, and in 1843 there was a record of convict indulgences. From the Australian government website regarding “convict indulgences”: “By the mid-1830s only six per cent of convicts were locked up. The vast majority worked for the government or free settlers and, with good behaviour, could earn a ticket of leave, conditional pardon or and even an absolute pardon. While under such orders convicts could earn their own living.” In 1856 in Camden, NSW, Isaac Stokes married Catherine Daly. With no further information on this record it would be impossible to know for sure if this was the right Isaac Stokes. This couple had six children, all in the Camden area, but none of the records provided enough information. No occupation or place or date of birth recorded for Isaac Stokes. I wrote to the National Library of Australia about the marriage record, and their reply was a surprise! Issac and Catherine were married on 30 September 1856, at the house of the Rev. Charles William Rigg, a Methodist minister, and it was recorded that Isaac was born in Edinburgh in 1821, to parents James Stokes and Sarah Ellis! The age at the time of the marriage doesn’t match Isaac’s age at death in 1877, and clearly the place of birth and parents didn’t match either. Only his fathers occupation of stone mason was correct. I wrote back to the helpful people at the library and they replied that the register was in a very poor condition and that only two and a half entries had survived at all, and that Isaac and Catherines marriage was recorded over two pages. I searched for an Isaac Stokes born in 1821 in Edinburgh on the Scotland government website (and on all the other genealogy records sites) and didn’t find it. In fact Stokes was a very uncommon name in Scotland at the time. I also searched Australian immigration and other records for another Isaac Stokes born in Scotland or born in 1821, and found nothing. I was unable to find a single record to corroborate this mysterious other Isaac Stokes. As the age at death in 1877 was correct, I assume that either Isaac was lying, or that some mistake was made either on the register at the home of the Methodist minster, or a subsequent mistranscription or muddle on the remnants of the surviving register. Therefore I remain convinced that the Camden stonemason Isaac Stokes was indeed our Isaac from Oxfordshire. I found a history society newsletter article that mentioned Isaac Stokes, stone mason, had built the Glenmore church, near Camden, in 1859.  From the Wollondilly museum April 2020 newsletter:  From the Camden History website: “The stone set over the porch of Glenmore Church gives the date of 1860. The church was begun in 1859 on land given by Joseph Moore. James Rogers of Picton was given the contract to build and local builder, Mr. Stokes, carried out the work. Elizabeth Moore, wife of Edward, laid the foundation stone. The first service was held on 19th March 1860. The cemetery alongside the church contains the headstones and memorials of the areas early pioneers.” Isaac died on the 3rd September 1877. The inquest report puts his place of death as Bagdelly, near to Camden, and another death register has put Cambelltown, also very close to Camden. His age was recorded as 71 and the inquest report states his cause of death was “rupture of one of the large pulmonary vessels of the lung”. His wife Catherine died in childbirth in 1870 at the age of 43. Isaac and Catherine’s children: William Stokes 1857-1928 Catherine Stokes 1859-1846 Sarah Josephine Stokes 1861-1931 Ellen Stokes 1863-1932 Rosanna Stokes 1865-1919 Louisa Stokes 1868-1844. It’s possible that Catherine Daly was a transported convict from Ireland. Some time later I unexpectedly received a follow up email from The Oaks Heritage Centre in Australia. “The Gaudry papers which we have in our archive record him (Isaac Stokes) as having built: the church, the school and the teachers residence. Isaac is recorded in the General return of convicts: 1837 and in Grevilles Post Office directory 1872 as a mason in Glenmore.”  October 19, 2022 at 6:46 am #6336 October 19, 2022 at 6:46 am #6336In reply to: Family Stories From The Other Side ~ Book TwoThe Hamstall Ridware Connection Stubbs and Woods  Hamstall Ridware Hamstall RidwareCharles Tomlinson‘s (1847-1907) wife Emma Grattidge (1853-1911) was born in Wolverhampton, the daughter and youngest child of William Grattidge (1820-1887) born in Foston, Derbyshire, and Mary Stubbs (1819-1880), born in Burton on Trent, daughter of Solomon Stubbs. Solomon Stubbs (1781-1857) was born in Hamstall Ridware in 1781, the son of Samuel and Rebecca. Samuel Stubbs (1743-) and Rebecca Wood (1754-) married in 1769 in Darlaston. Samuel and Rebecca had six other children, all born in Darlaston. Sadly four of them died in infancy. Son John was born in 1779 in Darlaston and died two years later in Hamstall Ridware in 1781, the same year that Solomon was born there. But why did they move to Hamstall Ridware? Samuel Stubbs was born in 1743 in Curdworth, Warwickshire (near to Birmingham). I had made a mistake on the tree (along with all of the public trees on the Ancestry website) and had Rebecca Wood born in Cheddleton, Staffordshire. Rebecca Wood from Cheddleton was also born in 1843, the right age for the marriage. The Rebecca Wood born in Darlaston in 1754 seemed too young, at just fifteen years old at the time of the marriage. I couldn’t find any explanation for why a woman from Cheddleton would marry in Darlaston and then move to Hamstall Ridware. People didn’t usually move around much other than intermarriage with neighbouring villages, especially women. I had a closer look at the Darlaston Rebecca, and did a search on her father William Wood. I found his 1784 will online in which he mentions his daughter Rebecca, wife of Samuel Stubbs. Clearly the right Rebecca Wood was the one born in Darlaston, which made much more sense. An excerpt from William Wood’s 1784 will mentioning daughter Rebecca married to Samuel Stubbs:  But why did they move to Hamstall Ridware circa 1780? I had not intially noticed that Solomon Stubbs married again the year after his wife Phillis Lomas (1787-1844) died. Solomon married Charlotte Bell in 1845 in Burton on Trent and on the marriage register, Solomon’s father Samuel Stubbs occupation was mentioned: Samuel was a buckle maker. Marriage of Solomon Stubbs and Charlotte Bell, father Samuel Stubbs buckle maker:  A rudimentary search on buckle making in the late 1700s provided a possible answer as to why Samuel and Rebecca left Darlaston in 1781. Shoe buckles had gone out of fashion, and by 1781 there were half as many buckle makers in Wolverhampton as there had been previously. “Where there were 127 buckle makers at work in Wolverhampton, 68 in Bilston and 58 in Birmingham in 1770, their numbers had halved in 1781.” via “historywebsite”(museum/metalware/steel) Steel buckles had been the height of fashion, and the trade became enormous in Wolverhampton. Wolverhampton was a steel working town, renowned for its steel jewellery which was probably of many types. The trade directories show great numbers of “buckle makers”. Steel buckles were predominantly made in Wolverhampton: “from the late 1760s cut steel comes to the fore, from the thriving industry of the Wolverhampton area”. Bilston was also a great centre of buckle making, and other areas included Walsall. (It should be noted that Darlaston, Walsall, Bilston and Wolverhampton are all part of the same area) In 1860, writing in defence of the Wolverhampton Art School, George Wallis talks about the cut steel industry in Wolverhampton. Referring to “the fine steel workers of the 17th and 18th centuries” he says: “Let them remember that 100 years ago [sc. c. 1760] a large trade existed with France and Spain in the fine steel goods of Birmingham and Wolverhampton, of which the latter were always allowed to be the best both in taste and workmanship. … A century ago French and Spanish merchants had their houses and agencies at Birmingham for the purchase of the steel goods of Wolverhampton…..The Great Revolution in France put an end to the demand for fine steel goods for a time and hostile tariffs finished what revolution began”. The next search on buckle makers, Wolverhampton and Hamstall Ridware revealed an unexpected connecting link. In Riotous Assemblies: Popular Protest in Hanoverian England by Adrian Randall:   In Walsall in 1750 on “Restoration Day” a crowd numbering 300 assembled, mostly buckle makers, singing Jacobite songs and other rebellious and riotous acts. The government was particularly worried about a curious meeting known as the “Jubilee” in Hamstall Ridware, which may have been part of a conspiracy for a Jacobite uprising. But this was thirty years before Samuel and Rebecca moved to Hamstall Ridware and does not help to explain why they moved there around 1780, although it does suggest connecting links. Rebecca’s father, William Wood, was a brickmaker. This was stated at the beginning of his will. On closer inspection of the will, he was a brickmaker who owned four acres of brick kilns, as well as dwelling houses, shops, barns, stables, a brewhouse, a malthouse, cattle and land. A page from the 1784 will of William Wood:  The 1784 will of William Wood of Darlaston: I William Wood the elder of Darlaston in the county of Stafford, brickmaker, being of sound and disposing mind memory and understanding (praised be to god for the same) do make publish and declare my last will and testament in manner and form following (that is to say) {after debts and funeral expense paid etc} I give to my loving wife Mary the use usage wear interest and enjoyment of all my goods chattels cattle stock in trade ~ money securities for money personal estate and effects whatsoever and wheresoever to hold unto her my said wife for and during the term of her natural life providing she so long continues my widow and unmarried and from or after her decease or intermarriage with any future husband which shall first happen. Then I give all the said goods chattels cattle stock in trade money securites for money personal estate and effects unto my son Abraham Wood absolutely and forever. Also I give devise and bequeath unto my said wife Mary all that my messuages tenement or dwelling house together with the malthouse brewhouse barn stableyard garden and premises to the same belonging situate and being at Darlaston aforesaid and now in my own possession. Also all that messuage tenement or dwelling house together with the shop garden and premises with the appurtenances to the same ~ belonging situate in Darlaston aforesaid and now in the several holdings or occupation of George Knowles and Edward Knowles to hold the aforesaid premises and every part thereof with the appurtenances to my said wife Mary for and during the term of her natural life provided she so long continues my widow and unmarried. And from or after her decease or intermarriage with a future husband which shall first happen. Then I give and devise the aforesaid premises and every part thereof with the appurtenances unto my said son Abraham Wood his heirs and assigns forever. Also I give unto my said wife all that piece or parcel of land or ground inclosed and taken out of Heath Field in the parish of Darlaston aforesaid containing four acres or thereabouts (be the same more or less) upon which my brick kilns erected and now in my own possession. To hold unto my said wife Mary until my said son Abraham attains his age of twenty one years if she so long continues my widow and unmarried as aforesaid and from and immediately after my said son Abraham attaining his age of twenty one years or my said wife marrying again as aforesaid which shall first happen then I give the said piece or parcel of land or ground and premises unto my said son Abraham his heirs and assigns forever. And I do hereby charge all the aforesaid premises with the payment of the sum of twenty pounds a piece to each of my daughters namely Elizabeth the wife of Ambrose Dudall and Rebecca the wife of Samuel Stubbs which said sum of twenty pounds each I devise may be paid to them by my said son Abraham when and so soon as he attains his age of twenty one years provided always and my mind and will is that if my said son Abraham should happen to depart this life without leaving issue of his body lawfully begotten before he attains his age of twenty one years then I give and devise all the aforesaid premises and every part thereof with the appurtenances so given to my said son Abraham as aforesaid unto my said son William Wood and my said daughter Elizabeth Dudall and Rebecca Stubbs their heirs and assigns forever equally divided among them share and share alike as tenants in common and not as joint tenants. And lastly I do hereby nominate constitute and appoint my said wife Mary and my said son Abraham executrix and executor of this my will. The marriage of William Wood (1725-1784) and Mary Clews (1715-1798) in 1749 was in Hamstall Ridware.  Mary was eleven years Williams senior, and it appears that they both came from Hamstall Ridware and moved to Darlaston after they married. Clearly Rebecca had extended family there (notwithstanding any possible connecting links between the Stubbs buckle makers of Darlaston and the Hamstall Ridware Jacobites thirty years prior). When the buckle trade collapsed in Darlaston, they likely moved to find employment elsewhere, perhaps with the help of Rebecca’s family. I have not yet been able to find deaths recorded anywhere for either Samuel or Rebecca (there are a couple of deaths recorded for a Samuel Stubbs, one in 1809 in Wolverhampton, and one in 1810 in Birmingham but impossible to say which, if either, is the right one with the limited information, and difficult to know if they stayed in the Hamstall Ridware area or perhaps moved elsewhere)~ or find a reason for their son Solomon to be in Burton upon Trent, an evidently prosperous man with several properties including an earthenware business, as well as a land carrier business. September 4, 2022 at 6:00 pm #6326In reply to: The Sexy Wooden LegStung by Egberts question, Olga reeled and almost lost her footing on the stairs. What had happened to her? That damned selfish individualism that was running rampant must have seeped into her room through the gaps in the windows or under the door. “No!” she shouted, her voice cracking. “Say it isn’t true, Olga,” Egbert said, his voice breaking. “Not you as well.” It took Olga a minute or two to still her racing heart. The near fall down the stairs had shaken her but with trembling hands she levered herself round to sit beside Egbert on the step. Gripping his bony knee with her knobbly arthritic fingers, she took a deep breath. “You are right to have said that, Egbert. If there is one thing we must hold onto, it’s our hearts. Nothing else matters, or at least nothing else matters as much as that. We are old and tired and we don’t like change. But if we escalate the importance of this frankly dreary and depressing home to the point where we lose our hearts…” she faltered and continued. “We will be homeless soon, very soon, and we know not what will happen to us. We must trust in the kindness of strangers, we must hope they have a heart.” Egbert winced as Olga squeezed his knee. “And that is why”, Olga continued, slapping Egberts thigh with gusto, “We must have a heart…” “If you’d just stop squeezing and hitting me, Olga…” Olga loosened her grip on the old mans thigh bone and peered into his eyes. Quietly she thanked him. “You’ve cleared my mind and given me something to live for, and I thank you for that. But you do need to launder your clothes more often,” she added, pulling a face. She didn’t want the old coot to start blubbing, and he looked alarmingly close to tears. “Come on, let’s go and see Obadiah. We’re all in this together. Homelessness and adventure can wait until tomorrow.” Olga heaved herself upright with a surprising burst of vitality. Noticing a weak smile trembling on Egberts lips, she said “That’s the spirit!” July 7, 2022 at 5:31 pm #6316In reply to: The Sexy Wooden LegMyroslava was hungry. She saw ducks flying in the sky and realised she wasn’t too far from the Kal’mius river, south of Dantesk. She took out her sling and hit one with a stone she just picked on the floor. She smiled and said in a low voice : “You see father, I haven’t lost my touch.” She had traveled several days with a group of reportourists, as she called them. A bunch of war reporters who thought it entertaining to take pictures of bombed areas, going about like peacocks as if they wore a plot armour against Rootian bullets and missiles and discourse at night on the tactics of the different armies. She was glad when she crossed the Rootian lines two days ago. Even if it meant no more dehydrated food and no more plot armour, she was certainly better off without the inane discussions. She picked the duck and looked for a freshly bombarded place where there was still smoke. She could make some fire without being noticed too much. She didn’t like raw meat that much. Soon after leaving the group or reportourists, without all the noise they made, she became certain she was being followed. She tried once to surprise them, but they were good at hiding and camouflaging their tracks. She wondered how long it had lasted. She cursed the noisy reporters and cursed her lack of good vodka. Cursing without alcohol was like boxing without fists. July 1, 2022 at 9:51 am #6306In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesLooking for Robert Staley William Warren (1835-1880) of Newhall (Stapenhill) married Elizabeth Staley (1836-1907) in 1858. Elizabeth was born in Newhall, the daughter of John Staley (1795-1876) and Jane Brothers. John was born in Newhall, and Jane was born in Armagh, Ireland, and they were married in Armagh in 1820. Elizabeths older brothers were born in Ireland: William in 1826 and Thomas in Dublin in 1830. Francis was born in Liverpool in 1834, and then Elizabeth in Newhall in 1836; thereafter the children were born in Newhall. Marriage of John Staley and Jane Brothers in 1820:  My grandmother related a story about an Elizabeth Staley who ran away from boarding school and eloped to Ireland, but later returned. The only Irish connection found so far is Jane Brothers, so perhaps she meant Elizabeth Staley’s mother. A boarding school seems unlikely, and it would seem that it was John Staley who went to Ireland. The 1841 census states Jane’s age as 33, which would make her just 12 at the time of her marriage. The 1851 census states her age as 44, making her 13 at the time of her 1820 marriage, and the 1861 census estimates her birth year as a more likely 1804. Birth records in Ireland for her have not been found. It’s possible, perhaps, that she was in service in the Newhall area as a teenager (more likely than boarding school), and that John and Jane ran off to get married in Ireland, although I haven’t found any record of a child born to them early in their marriage. John was an agricultural labourer, and later a coal miner. John Staley was the son of Joseph Staley (1756-1838) and Sarah Dumolo (1764-). Joseph and Sarah were married by licence in Newhall in 1782. Joseph was a carpenter on the marriage licence, but later a collier (although not necessarily a miner). The Derbyshire Record Office holds records of an “Estimate of Joseph Staley of Newhall for the cost of continuing to work Pisternhill Colliery” dated 1820 and addresssed to Mr Bloud at Calke Abbey (presumably the owner of the mine) Josephs parents were Robert Staley and Elizabeth. I couldn’t find a baptism or birth record for Robert Staley. Other trees on an ancestry site had his birth in Elton, but with no supporting documents. Robert, as stated in his 1795 will, was a Yeoman. “Yeoman: A former class of small freeholders who farm their own land; a commoner of good standing.” 
 “Husbandman: The old word for a farmer below the rank of yeoman. A husbandman usually held his land by copyhold or leasehold tenure and may be regarded as the ‘average farmer in his locality’. The words ‘yeoman’ and ‘husbandman’ were gradually replaced in the later 18th and 19th centuries by ‘farmer’.”He left a number of properties in Newhall and Hartshorne (near Newhall) including dwellings, enclosures, orchards, various yards, barns and acreages. It seemed to me more likely that he had inherited them, rather than moving into the village and buying them. There is a mention of Robert Staley in a 1782 newpaper advertisement. “Fire Engine To Be Sold. An exceedingly good fire engine, with the boiler, cylinder, etc in good condition. For particulars apply to Mr Burslem at Burton-upon-Trent, or Robert Staley at Newhall near Burton, where the engine may be seen.”  Was the fire engine perhaps connected with a foundry or a coal mine? I noticed that Robert Staley was the witness at a 1755 marriage in Stapenhill between Barbara Burslem and Richard Daston the younger esquire. The other witness was signed Burslem Jnr. Looking for Robert Staley I assumed that once again, in the absence of the correct records, a similarly named and aged persons baptism had been added to the tree regardless of accuracy, so I looked through the Stapenhill/Newhall parish register images page by page. There were no Staleys in Newhall at all in the early 1700s, so it seemed that Robert did come from elsewhere and I expected to find the Staleys in a neighbouring parish. But I still didn’t find any Staleys. I spoke to a couple of Staley descendants that I’d met during the family research. I met Carole via a DNA match some months previously and contacted her to ask about the Staleys in Elton. She also had Robert Staley born in Elton (indeed, there were many Staleys in Elton) but she didn’t have any documentation for his birth, and we decided to collaborate and try and find out more. I couldn’t find the earlier Elton parish registers anywhere online, but eventually found the untranscribed microfiche images of the Bishops Transcripts for Elton. via familysearch: 
 “In its most basic sense, a bishop’s transcript is a copy of a parish register. As bishop’s transcripts generally contain more or less the same information as parish registers, they are an invaluable resource when a parish register has been damaged, destroyed, or otherwise lost. Bishop’s transcripts are often of value even when parish registers exist, as priests often recorded either additional or different information in their transcripts than they did in the original registers.”Unfortunately there was a gap in the Bishops Transcripts between 1704 and 1711 ~ exactly where I needed to look. I subsequently found out that the Elton registers were incomplete as they had been damaged by fire. I estimated Robert Staleys date of birth between 1710 and 1715. He died in 1795, and his son Daniel died in 1805: both of these wills were found online. Daniel married Mary Moon in Stapenhill in 1762, making a likely birth date for Daniel around 1740. The marriage of Robert Staley (assuming this was Robert’s father) and Alice Maceland (or Marsland or Marsden, depending on how the parish clerk chose to spell it presumably) was in the Bishops Transcripts for Elton in 1704. They were married in Elton on 26th February. There followed the missing parish register pages and in all likelihood the records of the baptisms of their first children. No doubt Robert was one of them, probably the first male child. (Incidentally, my grandfather’s Marshalls also came from Elton, a small Derbyshire village near Matlock. The Staley’s are on my grandmothers Warren side.) The parish register pages resume in 1711. One of the first entries was the baptism of Robert Staley in 1711, parents Thomas and Ann. This was surely the one we were looking for, and Roberts parents weren’t Robert and Alice. But then in 1735 a marriage was recorded between Robert son of Robert Staley (and this was unusual, the father of the groom isn’t usually recorded on the parish register) and Elizabeth Milner. They were married on the 9th March 1735. We know that the Robert we were looking for married an Elizabeth, as her name was on the Stapenhill baptisms of their later children, including Joseph Staleys. The 1735 marriage also fit with the assumed birth date of Daniel, circa 1740. A baptism was found for a Robert Staley in 1738 in the Elton registers, parents Robert and Elizabeth, as well as the baptism in 1736 for Mary, presumably their first child. Her burial is recorded the following year. The marriage of Robert Staley and Elizabeth Milner in 1735:  There were several other Staley couples of a similar age in Elton, perhaps brothers and cousins. It seemed that Thomas and Ann’s son Robert was a different Robert, and that the one we were looking for was prior to that and on the missing pages. Even so, this doesn’t prove that it was Elizabeth Staleys great grandfather who was born in Elton, but no other birth or baptism for Robert Staley has been found. It doesn’t explain why the Staleys moved to Stapenhill either, although the Enclosures Act and the Industrial Revolution could have been factors. The 18th century saw the rise of the Industrial Revolution and many renowned Derbyshire Industrialists emerged. They created the turning point from what was until then a largely rural economy, to the development of townships based on factory production methods. The Marsden Connection There are some possible clues in the records of the Marsden family. Robert Staley married Alice Marsden (or Maceland or Marsland) in Elton in 1704. Robert Staley is mentioned in the 1730 will of John Marsden senior, of Baslow, Innkeeper (Peacock Inne & Whitlands Farm). He mentions his daughter Alice, wife of Robert Staley. In a 1715 Marsden will there is an intriguing mention of an alias, which might explain the different spellings on various records for the name Marsden: “MARSDEN alias MASLAND, Christopher – of Baslow, husbandman, 28 Dec 1714. son Robert MARSDEN alias MASLAND….” etc. Some potential reasons for a move from one parish to another are explained in this history of the Marsden family, and indeed this could relate to Robert Staley as he married into the Marsden family and his wife was a beneficiary of a Marsden will. The Chatsworth Estate, at various times, bought a number of farms in order to extend the park. THE MARSDEN FAMILY 
 OXCLOSE AND PARKGATE
 In the Parishes of
 Baslow and Chatsworthby 
 David Dalrymple-Smith“John Marsden (b1653) another son of Edmund (b1611) faired well. By the time he died in 
 1730 he was publican of the Peacock, the Inn on Church Lane now called the Cavendish
 Hotel, and the farmer at “Whitlands”, almost certainly Bubnell Cliff Farm.”“Coal mining was well known in the Chesterfield area. The coalfield extends as far as the 
 Gritstone edges, where thin seams outcrop especially in the Baslow area.”“…the occupants were evicted from the farmland below Dobb Edge and 
 the ground carefully cleared of all traces of occupation and farming. Shelter belts were
 planted especially along the Heathy Lea Brook. An imposing new drive was laid to the
 Chatsworth House with the Lodges and “The Golden Gates” at its northern end….”Although this particular event was later than any events relating to Robert Staley, it’s an indication of how farms and farmland disappeared, and a reason for families to move to another area: “The Dukes of Devonshire (of Chatsworth) were major figures in the aristocracy and the government of the 
 time. Such a position demanded a display of wealth and ostentation. The 6th Duke of
 Devonshire, the Bachelor Duke, was not content with the Chatsworth he inherited in 1811,
 and immediately started improvements. After major changes around Edensor, he turned his
 attention at the north end of the Park. In 1820 plans were made extend the Park up to the
 Baslow parish boundary. As this would involve the destruction of most of the Farm at
 Oxclose, the farmer at the Higher House Samuel Marsden (b1755) was given the tenancy of
 Ewe Close a large farm near Bakewell.
 Plans were revised in 1824 when the Dukes of Devonshire and Rutland “Exchanged Lands”,
 reputedly during a game of dice. Over 3300 acres were involved in several local parishes, of
 which 1000 acres were in Baslow. In the deal Devonshire acquired the southeast corner of
 Baslow Parish.
 Part of the deal was Gibbet Moor, which was developed for “Sport”. The shelf of land
 between Parkgate and Robin Hood and a few extra fields was left untouched. The rest,
 between Dobb Edge and Baslow, was agricultural land with farms, fields and houses. It was
 this last part that gave the Duke the opportunity to improve the Park beyond his earlier
 expectations.”The 1795 will of Robert Staley. Inriguingly, Robert included the children of his son Daniel Staley in his will, but omitted to leave anything to Daniel. A perusal of Daniels 1808 will sheds some light on this: Daniel left his property to his six reputed children with Elizabeth Moon, and his reputed daughter Mary Brearly. Daniels wife was Mary Moon, Elizabeths husband William Moons daughter. The will of Robert Staley, 1795:   The 1805 will of Daniel Staley, Robert’s son: This is the last will and testament of me Daniel Staley of the Township of Newhall in the parish of Stapenhill in the County of Derby, Farmer. I will and order all of my just debts, funeral and testamentary expenses to be fully paid and satisfied by my executors hereinafter named by and out of my personal estate as soon as conveniently may be after my decease. I give, devise and bequeath to Humphrey Trafford Nadin of Church Gresely in the said County of Derby Esquire and John Wilkinson of Newhall aforesaid yeoman all my messuages, lands, tenements, hereditaments and real and personal estates to hold to them, their heirs, executors, administrators and assigns until Richard Moon the youngest of my reputed sons by Elizabeth Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years upon trust that they, my said trustees, (or the survivor of them, his heirs, executors, administrators or assigns), shall and do manage and carry on my farm at Newhall aforesaid and pay and apply the rents, issues and profits of all and every of my said real and personal estates in for and towards the support, maintenance and education of all my reputed children by the said Elizabeth Moon until the said Richard Moon my youngest reputed son shall attain his said age of twenty one years and equally share and share and share alike. And it is my will and desire that my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall recruit and keep up the stock upon my farm as they in their discretion shall see occasion or think proper and that the same shall not be diminished. And in case any of my said reputed children by the said Elizabeth Moon shall be married before my said reputed youngest son shall attain his age of twenty one years that then it is my will and desire that non of their husbands or wives shall come to my farm or be maintained there or have their abode there. That it is also my will and desire in case my reputed children or any of them shall not be steady to business but instead shall be wild and diminish the stock that then my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall have full power and authority in their discretion to sell and dispose of all or any part of my said personal estate and to put out the money arising from the sale thereof to interest and to pay and apply the interest thereof and also thereunto of the said real estate in for and towards the maintenance, education and support of all my said reputed children by the said 
 Elizabeth Moon as they my said trustees in their discretion that think proper until the said Richard Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years.Then I give to my grandson Daniel Staley the sum of ten pounds and to each and every of my sons and daughters namely Daniel Staley, Benjamin Staley, John Staley, William Staley, Elizabeth Dent and Sarah Orme and to my niece Ann Brearly the sum of five pounds apiece. I give to my youngest reputed son Richard Moon one share in the Ashby Canal Navigation and I direct that my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall have full power and authority to pay and apply all or any part of the fortune or legacy hereby intended for my youngest reputed son Richard Moon in placing him out to any trade, business or profession as they in their discretion shall think proper. 
 And I direct that to my said sons and daughters by my late wife and my said niece shall by wholly paid by my said reputed son Richard Moon out of the fortune herby given him. And it is my will and desire that my said reputed children shall deliver into the hands of my executors all the monies that shall arise from the carrying on of my business that is not wanted to carry on the same unto my acting executor and shall keep a just and true account of all disbursements and receipts of the said business and deliver up the same to my acting executor in order that there may not be any embezzlement or defraud amongst them and from and immediately after my said reputed youngest son Richard Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years then I give, devise and bequeath all my real estate and all the residue and remainder of my personal estate of what nature and kind whatsoever and wheresoever unto and amongst all and every my said reputed sons and daughters namely William Moon, Thomas Moon, Joseph Moon, Richard Moon, Ann Moon, Margaret Moon and to my reputed daughter Mary Brearly to hold to them and their respective heirs, executors, administrator and assigns for ever according to the nature and tenure of the same estates respectively to take the same as tenants in common and not as joint tenants.And lastly I nominate and appoint the said Humphrey Trafford Nadin and John Wilkinson executors of this my last will and testament and guardians of all my reputed children who are under age during their respective minorities hereby revoking all former and other wills by me heretofore made and declaring this only to be my last will. In witness whereof I the said Daniel Staley the testator have to this my last will and testament set my hand and seal the eleventh day of March in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and five. May 21, 2022 at 9:34 am #6299In reply to: The Sexy Wooden LegLooking at the blemish feverish man on the camp bed, General Lyaksandro Rudechenko clenched his fists. The wooden leg, that had been the symbol of the Oocranian Resistance for the last year was now lying on the floor. President Voldomeer had contracted a virus that confounded their best doctors and the remaining chiefs of the Oocranian Resistance feared he would soon join the men fallen for their country. — Nobody must know that the sexiest man of Oocrane is incapacitated. We need a replacement, said the General. — President Voldomeer told me of a man, the very man who made that wooden leg, said Major Myroslava Kovalev, the candle light reflecting in her glass eye. He lives in the Dumbass region. He’s a secret twin or something, President Voldomeer was not so clear about that part, but at least they look alike. To make it more real, we can have his leg removed, she added pointing at the wooden leg. She was proud of being one of the only women ranking that high in the military. His fellow people might not be Lazies, but they had some old idea about women, that were not the best choice for fighting. Myroslava had always wanted to prove them wrong, and this conflict had been her chance to rise almost to the top. She looked at the dying man who was once her ladder. He had been sexy, and certainly could do many things with his wooden leg. Now he was but the shadow of a man, pale and blurry as cataract. If she had loved him, she might have shed a tear. Myroslava looked at General Rudechenko’s pockmarked face and shivered. She wouldn’t even share a cab with him. But he was the next in command, and before Voldomeer fell ill, she was on her way to take his place, even closer to the top. — Let me bring him to you, she added. — That’s a suicide mission, said the general. Permission granted. — Thank you General ! said Myroslava doing the military salute before leaving the tent. Despite his being from Dumbass and having made some mistakes in his life, Lyaksandro was not stupid. He knew quite well what that woman wanted. He called, Glib, his aide-de-camp. — Make sure she gets lost behind the enemy lines. April 2, 2022 at 6:15 pm #6286In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesMatthew Orgill and His Family Matthew Orgill 1828-1907 was the Orgill brother who went to Australia, but returned to Measham. Matthew married Mary Orgill in Measham in October 1856, having returned from Victoria, Australia in May of that year. Although Matthew was the first Orgill brother to go to Australia, he was the last one I found, and that was somewhat by accident, while perusing “Orgill” and “Measham” in a newspaper archives search. I chanced on Matthew’s obituary in the Nuneaton Observer, Friday 14 June 1907: LATE MATTHEW ORGILL PEACEFUL END TO A BLAMELESS LIFE. ‘Sunset and Evening Star And one clear call for me.” It is with very deep regret that we have to announce the death of Mr. Matthew Orgill, late of Measham, who passed peacefully away at his residence in Manor Court Road, Nuneaton, in the early hours of yesterday morning. Mr. Orgill, who was in his eightieth year, was a man with a striking history, and was a very fine specimen of our best English manhood. In early life be emigrated to South Africa—sailing in the “Hebrides” on 4th February. 1850—and was one of the first settlers at the Cape; afterwards he went on to Australia at the time of the Gold Rush, and ultimately came home to his native England and settled down in Measham, in Leicestershire, where he carried on a successful business for the long period of half-a-century. He was full of reminiscences of life in the Colonies in the early days, and an hour or two in his company was an education itself. On the occasion of the recall of Sir Harry Smith from the Governorship of Natal (for refusing to be a party to the slaying of the wives and children in connection with the Kaffir War), Mr. Orgill was appointed to superintend the arrangements for the farewell demonstration. It was one of his boasts that he made the first missionary cart used in South Africa, which is in use to this day—a monument to the character of his work; while it is an interesting fact to note that among Mr. Orgill’s papers there is the original ground-plan of the city of Durban before a single house was built. In Africa Mr. Orgill came in contact with the great missionary, David Livingstone, and between the two men there was a striking resemblance in character and a deep and lasting friendship. Mr. Orgill could give a most graphic description of the wreck of the “Birkenhead,” having been in the vicinity at the time when the ill-fated vessel went down. He played a most prominent part on the occasion of the famous wreck of the emigrant ship, “Minerva.” when, in conjunction with some half-a-dozen others, and at the eminent risk of their own lives, they rescued more than 100 of the unfortunate passengers. He was afterwards presented with an interesting relic as a memento of that thrilling experience, being a copper bolt from the vessel on which was inscribed the following words: “Relic of the ship Minerva, wrecked off Bluff Point, Port Natal. 8.A.. about 2 a.m.. Friday, July 5, 1850.” Mr. Orgill was followed to the Colonies by no fewer than six of his brothers, all of whom did well, and one of whom married a niece (brother’s daughter) of the late Mr. William Ewart Gladstone. On settling down in Measham his kindly and considerate disposition soon won for him a unique place in the hearts of all the people, by whom he was greatly beloved. He was a man of sterling worth and integrity. Upright and honourable in all his dealings, he led a Christian life that was a pattern to all with whom he came in contact, and of him it could truly he said that he wore the white flower of a blameless life. He was a member of the Baptist Church, and although beyond much active service since settling down in Nuneaton less than two years ago he leaves behind him a record in Christian service attained by few. In politics he was a Radical of the old school. A great reader, he studied all the questions of the day, and could back up every belief he held by sound and fearless argument. The South African – war was a great grief to him. He knew the Boers from personal experience, and although he suffered at the time of the war for his outspoken condemnation, he had the satisfaction of living to see the people of England fully recognising their awful blunder. To give anything like an adequate idea of Mr. Orgill’s history would take up a great amount of space, and besides much of it has been written and commented on before; suffice it to say that it was strenuous, interesting, and eventful, and yet all through his hands remained unspotted and his heart was pure. He is survived by three daughters, and was father-in-law to Mr. J. S. Massey. St Kilda. Manor Court Road, to whom deep and loving sympathy is extended in their sore bereavement by a wide circle of friends. The funeral is arranged to leave for Measham on Monday at twelve noon. “To give anything like an adequate idea of Mr. Orgill’s history would take up a great amount of space, and besides much of it has been written and commented on before…” I had another look in the newspaper archives and found a number of articles mentioning him, including an intriguing excerpt in an article about local history published in the Burton Observer and Chronicle 8 August 1963: on an upstairs window pane he scratched with his diamond ring “Matthew Orgill, 1st July, 1858”   I asked on a Measham facebook group if anyone knew the location of the house mentioned in the article and someone kindly responded. This is the same building, seen from either side:  Coincidentally, I had already found this wonderful photograph of the same building, taken in 1910 ~ three years after Matthew’s death.  But what to make of the inscription in the window? Matthew and Mary married in October 1856, and their first child (according to the records I’d found thus far) was a daughter Mary born in 1860. I had a look for a Matthew Orgill birth registered in 1858, the date Matthew had etched on the window, and found a death for a Matthew Orgill in 1859. Assuming I would find the birth of Matthew Orgill registered on the first of July 1958, to match the etching in the window, the corresponding birth was in July 1857! Matthew and Mary had four children. Matthew, Mary, Clara and Hannah. Hannah Proudman Orgill married Joseph Stanton Massey. The Orgill name continues with their son Stanley Orgill Massey 1900-1979, who was a doctor and surgeon. Two of Stanley’s four sons were doctors, Paul Mackintosh Orgill Massey 1929-2009, and Michael Joseph Orgill Massey 1932-1989. Mary Orgill 1827-1894, Matthews wife, was an Orgill too. And this is where the Orgill branch of the tree gets complicated. Mary’s father was Henry Orgill born in 1805 and her mother was Hannah Proudman born in 1805. 
 Henry Orgill’s father was Matthew Orgill born in 1769 and his mother was Frances Finch born in 1771.Mary’s husband Matthews parents are Matthew Orgill born in 1798 and Elizabeth Orgill born in 1803. Another Orgill Orgill marriage! Matthews parents, Matthew and Elizabeth, have the same grandparents as each other, Matthew Orgill born in 1736 and Ann Proudman born in 1735. But Matthews grandparents are none other than Matthew Orgill born in 1769 and Frances Finch born in 1771 ~ the same grandparents as his wife Mary! March 17, 2022 at 10:37 am #6283In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesPurdy Cousins My great grandmother Mary Ann Gilman Purdy was one of five children. Her sister Ellen Purdy was a well traveled nurse, and her sister Kate Rushby was a publican whose son who went to Africa. But what of her eldest sister Elizabeth and her brother Richard? Elizabeth Purdy 1869-1905 married Benjamin George Little in 1892 in Basford, Nottinghamshire. Their first child, Frieda Olive Little, was born in Eastwood in December 1896, and their second daughter Catherine Jane Little was born in Warrington, Cheshire, in 1898. A third daughter, Edna Francis Little was born in 1900, but died three months later. When I noticed that this unidentified photograph in our family collection was taken by a photographer in Warrington, and as no other family has been found in Warrington, I concluded that these two little girls are Frieda and Catherine:  Benjamin Little, born in 1869, was the manager of a boot shop, according to the 1901 census, and a boot maker on the 1911 census. I found a photograph of Benjamin and Elizabeth Little on an ancestry website:  Frieda Olive Little 1896-1977 married Robert Warburton in 1924. Frieda and Robert had two sons and a daughter, although one son died in infancy. They lived in Leominster, in Herefordshire, but Frieda died in 1977 at Enfield Farm in Warrington, four years after the death of her husband Robert. Catherine Jane Little 1899-1975 married Llewelyn Robert Prince 1884-1950. They do not appear to have had any children. Llewelyn was manager of the National Provinical Bank at Eltham in London, but died at Brook Cottage in Kingsland, Herefordshire. His wifes aunt Ellen Purdy the nurse had also lived at Brook Cottage. Ellen died in 1947, but her husband Frank Garbett was at the funeral:  Richard Purdy 1877-1940 Richard was born in Eastwood, Nottinghamshire. When his mother Catherine died in 1884 Richard was six years old. My great grandmother Mary Ann and her sister Ellen went to live with the Gilman’s in Buxton, but Richard and the two older sisters, Elizabeth and Kate, stayed with their father George Purdy, who remarried soon afterwards. Richard married Ada Elizabeth Clarke in 1899. In 1901 Richard was an earthenware packer at a pottery, and on the 1939 census he was a colliery dataller. A dataller was a day wage man, paid on a daily basis for work done as required. Richard and Ada had four children: Richard Baden Purdy 1900-1945, Winifred Maude 1903-1974, John Frederick 1907-1945, and Violet Gertrude 1910-1974. Richard Baden Purdy married Ethel May Potter in Mansfield, Nottinghamshire, in 1926. He was listed on the 1939 census as a colliery deputy. In 1945 Richard Baden Purdy died as a result of injuries in a mine explosion.  John Frederick Purdy married Iris Merryweather in 1938. On the 1939 census John and Iris live in Arnold, Nottinghamshire, and John’s occupation is a colliery hewer. Their daughter Barbara Elizabeth was born later that year. John died in 1945, the same year as his brother Richard Baden Purdy. It is not known without purchasing the death certificate what the cause of death was. A memorial was posted in the Nottingham Evening Post on 29 June 1948: PURDY, loving memories, Richard Baden, accidentally killed June 29th 1945; John Frederick, died 1 April 1945; Richard Purdy, father, died December 1940. Too dearly loved to be forgotten. Mother, families. Violet Gertrude Purdy married Sidney Garland in 1932 in Southwell, Nottinghamshire. She died in Edwinstowe, Nottinghamshire, in 1974. Winifred Maude Purdy married Bernard Fowler in Southwell in 1928. She also died in 1974, in Mansfield. The two brothers died the same year, in 1945, and the two sisters died the same year, in 1974. March 10, 2022 at 7:40 am #6281In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesThe Measham Thatchers Orgills, Finches and Wards Measham is a large village in north west Leicestershire, England, near the Derbyshire, Staffordshire and Warwickshire boundaries. Our family has a penchant for border straddling, and the Orgill’s of Measham take this a step further living on the boundaries of four counties. Historically it was in an exclave of Derbyshire absorbed into Leicestershire in 1897, so once again we have two sets of county records to search. ORGILL Richard Gretton, the baker of Swadlincote and my great grandmother Florence Nightingale Grettons’ father, married Sarah Orgill (1840-1910) in 1861. (Incidentally, Florence Nightingale Warren nee Gretton’s first child Hildred born in 1900 had the middle name Orgill. Florence’s brother John Orgill Gretton emigrated to USA.) When they first married, they lived with Sarah’s widowed mother Elizabeth in Measham. Elizabeth Orgill is listed on the 1861 census as a farmer of two acres. Sarah Orgill’s father Matthew Orgill (1798-1859) was a thatcher, as was his father Matthew Orgill (1771-1852). Matthew Orgill the elder left his property to his son Henry:  Sarah’s mother Elizabeth (1803-1876) was also an Orgill before her marriage to Matthew. According to Pigot & Co’s Commercial Directory for Derbyshire, in Measham in 1835 Elizabeth Orgill was a straw bonnet maker, an ideal occupation for a thatchers wife. Matthew Orgill, thatcher, is listed in White’s directory in 1857, and other Orgill’s are mentioned in Measham: Mary Orgill, straw hat maker; Henry Orgill, grocer; Daniel Orgill, painter; another Matthew Orgill is a coal merchant and wheelwright. Likewise a number of Orgill’s are listed in the directories for Measham in the subsequent years, as farmers, plumbers, painters, grocers, thatchers, wheelwrights, coal merchants and straw bonnet makers. Matthew and Elizabeth Orgill, Measham Baptist church:  According to a history of thatching, for every six or seven thatchers appearing in the 1851 census there are now less than one. Another interesting fact in the history of thatched roofs (via thatchinginfo dot com): The Watling Street Divide… 
 The biggest dividing line of all, that between the angular thatching of the Northern and Eastern traditions and the rounded Southern style, still roughly follows a very ancient line; the northern section of the old Roman road of Watling Street, the modern A5. Seemingly of little significance today; this was once the border between two peoples. Agreed in the peace treaty, between the Saxon King Alfred and Guthrum, the Danish Viking leader; over eleven centuries ago.
 After making their peace, various Viking armies settled down, to the north and east of the old road; firstly, in what was known as The Danelaw and later in Norse kingdoms, based in York. They quickly formed a class of farmers and peasants. Although the Saxon kings soon regained this area; these people stayed put. Their influence is still seen, for example, in the widespread use of boarded gable ends, so common in Danish thatching.
 Over time, the Southern and Northern traditions have slipped across the old road, by a few miles either way. But even today, travelling across the old highway will often bring the differing thatching traditions quickly into view.Pear Tree Cottage, Bosworth Road, Measham. 1900. Matthew Orgill was a thatcher living on Bosworth road.  FINCH Matthew the elder married Frances Finch 1771-1848, also of Measham. On the 1851 census Matthew is an 80 year old thatcher living with his daughter Mary and her husband Samuel Piner, a coal miner. Henry Finch 1743- and Mary Dennis 1749- , both of Measham, were Frances parents. Henry’s father was also Henry Finch, born in 1707 in Measham, and he married Frances Ward, also born in 1707, and also from Measham. WARD The ancient boundary between the kingdom of Mercia and the Danelaw I didn’t find much information on the history of Measham, but I did find a great deal of ancient history on the nearby village of Appleby Magna, two miles away. The parish records indicate that the Ward and Finch branches of our family date back to the 1500’s in the village, and we can assume that the ancient history of the neighbouring village would be relevant to our history. There is evidence of human settlement in Appleby from the early Neolithic period, 6,000 years ago, and there are also Iron Age and Bronze Age sites in the vicinity. There is evidence of further activity within the village during the Roman period, including evidence of a villa or farm and a temple. Appleby is near three known Roman roads: Watling Street, 10 miles south of the village; Bath Lane, 5 miles north of the village; and Salt Street, which forms the parish’s south boundary. But it is the Scandinavian invasions that are particularly intriguing, with regard to my 58% Scandinavian DNA (and virtually 100% Midlands England ancestry). Repton is 13 miles from Measham. In the early 10th century Chilcote, Measham and Willesley were part of the royal Derbyshire estate of Repton. The arrival of Scandinavian invaders in the second half of the ninth century caused widespread havoc throughout northern England. By the AD 870s the Danish army was occupying Mercia and it spent the winter of 873-74 at Repton, the headquarters of the Mercian kings. The events are recorded in detail in the Peterborough manuscript of the Anglo-Saxon Chronicles… Although the Danes held power for only 40 years, a strong, even subversive, Danish element remained in the population for many years to come. A Scandinavian influence may also be detected among the field names of the parish. Although many fields have relatively modern names, some clearly have elements which reach back to the time of Danish incursion and control. The Borders: The name ‘aeppel byg’ is given in the will of Wulfic Spot of AD 1004……………..The decision at Domesday to include this land in Derbyshire, as one of Burton Abbey’s Derbyshire manors, resulted in the division of the village of Appleby Magna between the counties of Leicester and Derby for the next 800 years Richard Dunmore’s Appleby Magma website. This division of Appleby between Leicestershire and Derbyshire persisted from Domesday until 1897, when the recently created county councils (1889) simplified the administration of many villages in this area by a radical realignment of the boundary:  I would appear that our family not only straddle county borders, but straddle ancient kingdom borders as well. This particular branch of the family (we assume, given the absence of written records that far back) were living on the edge of the Danelaw and a strong element of the Danes survives to this day in my DNA. February 8, 2022 at 2:24 pm #6275In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family Stories“AND NOW ABOUT EMMA” and a mystery about George I had overlooked this interesting part of Barbara Housley’s “Narrative on the Letters” initially, perhaps because I was more focused on finding Samuel Housley. But when I did eventually notice, I wondered how I had missed it! In this particularly interesting letter excerpt from Joseph, Barbara has not put the date of the letter ~ unusually, because she did with all of the others. However I dated the letter to later than 1867, because Joseph mentions his wife, and they married in 1867. This is important, because there are two Emma Housleys. Joseph had a sister Emma, born in 1836, two years before Joseph was born. At first glance, one would assume that a reference to Emma in the letters would mean his sister, but Emma the sister was married in Derby in 1858, and by 1869 had four children. But there was another Emma Housley, born in 1851. From Barbara Housley’s Narrative on the Letters: “AND NOW ABOUT EMMA” A MYSTERY A very mysterious comment is contained in a letter from Joseph: “And now about Emma. I have only seen her once and she came to me to get your address but I did not feel at liberty to give it to her until I had wrote to you but however she got it from someone. I think it was in this way. I was so pleased to hear from you in the first place and with John’s family coming to see me I let them read one or two of your letters thinking they would like to hear of you and I expect it was Will that noticed your address and gave it to her. She came up to our house one day when I was at work to know if I had heard from you but I had not heard from you since I saw her myself and then she called again after that and my wife showed her your boys’ portraits thinking no harm in doing so.” At this point Joseph interrupted himself to thank them for sending the portraits. The next sentence is: “Your son JOHN I have never seen to know him but I hear he is rather wild,” followed by: “EMMA has been living out service but don’t know where she is now.” Since Joseph had just been talking about the portraits of George’s three sons, one of whom is John Eley, this could be a reference to things George has written in despair about a teen age son–but could Emma be a first wife and John their son? Or could Emma and John both be the children of a first wife? Elsewhere, Joseph wrote, “AMY ELEY died 14 years ago. (circa 1858) She left a son and a daughter.” An Amey Eley and a George Housley were married on April 1, 1849 in Duffield which is about as far west of Smalley as Heanor is East. She was the daughter of John, a framework knitter, and Sarah Eley. George’s father is listed as William, a farmer. Amey was described as “of full age” and made her mark on the marriage document. Anne wrote in August 1854: “JOHN ELEY is living at Derby Station so must take the first opportunity to get the receipt.” Was John Eley Housley named for him? (John Eley Housley is George Housley’s son in USA, with his second wife, Sarah.) George Housley married Amey Eley in 1849 in Duffield. George’s father on the register is William Housley, farmer. Amey Eley’s father is John Eley, framework knitter.  On the 1851 census, George Housley and his wife Amey Housley are living with her parents in Heanor, John Eley, a framework knitter, and his wife Rebecca. Also on the census are Charles J Housley, born in 1849 in Heanor, and Emma Housley, three months old at the time of the census, born in 1851. George’s birth place is listed as Smalley.  On the 31st of July 1851 George Housley arrives in New York. In 1854 George Housley marries Sarah Ann Hill in USA. On the 1861 census in Heanor, Rebecca Eley was a widow, her husband John having died in 1852, and she had three grandchildren living with her: Charles J Housley aged 12, Emma Housley, 10, and mysteriously a William Housley aged 5! Amey Housley, the childrens mother, died in 1858.  Back to the mysterious comment in Joseph’s letter. Joseph couldn’t have been speaking of his sister Emma. She was married with children by the time Joseph wrote that letter, so was not just out of service, and Joseph would have known where she was. There is no reason to suppose that the sister Emma was trying unsuccessfully to find George’s addresss: she had been sending him letters for years. Joseph must have been referring to George’s daughter Emma. Joseph comments to George “Your son John…is rather wild.” followed by the remark about Emma’s whereabouts. Could Charles John Housley have used his middle name of John instead of Charles? As for the child William born five years after George left for USA, despite his name of Housley, which was his mothers married name, we can assume that he was not a Housley ~ not George’s child, anyway. It is not clear who his father was, as Amey did not remarry. A further excerpt from Barbara Housley’s Narrative on the Letters: Certainly there was some mystery in George’s life. George apparently wanted his whereabouts kept secret. Anne wrote: “People are at a loss to know where you are. The general idea is you are with Charles. We don’t satisfy them.” In that same letter Anne wrote: “I know you could not help thinking of us very often although you neglected writing…and no doubt would feel grieved for the trouble you at times caused (our mother). She freely forgives all.” Near the end of the letter, Anne added: “Mother sends her love to you and hopes you will write and if you want to tell her anything you don’t want all to see you must write it on a piece of loose paper and put it inside the letter.” In a letter to George from his sister Emma: Emma wrote in 1855, “We write in love to your wife and yourself and you must write soon and tell us whether there is a little nephew or niece and what you call them.” In June of 1856, Emma wrote: “We want to see dear Sarah Ann and the dear little boy. We were much pleased with the “bit of news” you sent.” The bit of news was the birth of John Eley Housley, January 11, 1855. Emma concluded her letter “Give our very kindest love to dear sister and dearest Johnnie.” It would seem that George Housley named his first son with his second wife after his first wife’s father ~ while he was married to both of them. Emma Housley 1851-1935 In 1871 Emma was 20 years old and “in service” living as a lodger in West Hallam, not far from Heanor. As she didn’t appear on a 1881 census, I looked for a marriage, but the only one that seemed right in every other way had Emma Housley’s father registered as Ralph Wibberly! Who was Ralph Wibberly? A family friend or neighbour, perhaps, someone who had been a father figure? The first Ralph Wibberly I found was a blind wood cutter living in Derby. He had a son also called Ralph Wibberly. I did not think Ralph Wibberly would be a very common name, but I was wrong. I then found a Ralph Wibberly living in Heanor, with a son also named Ralph Wibberly. A Ralph Wibberly married an Emma Salt from Heanor. In 1874, a 36 year old Ralph Wibberly (born in 1838) was on trial in Derby for inflicting grevious bodily harm on William Fretwell of Heanor. His occupation is “platelayer” (a person employed in laying and maintaining railway track.) The jury found him not guilty. In 1851 a 23 year old Ralph Wibberly (born in 1828) was a prisoner in Derby Gaol. However, Ralph Wibberly, a 50 year old labourer born in 1801 and his son Ralph Wibberly, aged 13 and born in 1838, are living in Belper on the 1851 census. Perhaps the son was the same Ralph Wibberly who was found not guilty of GBH in 1874. This appears to be the one who married Emma Salt, as his wife on the 1871 census is called Emma, and his occupation is “Midland Company Railway labourer”. Which was the Ralph Wibberly that Emma chose to name as her father on the marriage register? We may never know, but perhaps we can assume it was Ralph Wibberly born in 1801. It is unlikely to be the blind wood cutter from Derby; more likely to be the local Ralph Wibberly. Maybe his son Ralph, who we know was involved in a fight in 1874, was a friend of Emma’s brother Charles John, who was described by Joseph as a “wild one”, although Ralph was 11 years older than Charles John. Emma Housley married James Slater on Christmas day in Heanor in 1873. Their first child, a daughter, was called Amy. Emma’s mother was Amy Eley. James Slater was a colliery brakesman (employed to work the steam-engine, or other machinery used in raising the coal from the mine.) It occurred to me to wonder if Emma Housley (George’s daughter) knew Elizabeth, Mary Anne and Catherine (Samuel’s daughters). They were cousins, lived in the vicinity, and they had in common with each other having been deserted by their fathers who were brothers. Emma was born two years after Catherine. Catherine was living with John Benniston, a framework knitter in Heanor, from 1851 to 1861. Emma was living with her grandfather John Ely, a framework knitter in Heanor. In 1861, George Purdy was also living in Heanor. He was listed on the census as a 13 year old coal miner! George Purdy and Catherine Housley married in 1866 in Eastwood, Nottinghamshire ~ just over the county border. Emma’s first child Amy was born in Heanor, but the next two children, Eliza and Lilly, were born in Eastwood, in 1878 and 1880. Catherine and George’s fifth child, my great grandmother Mary Ann Gilman Purdy, was born in Eastwood in 1880, the same year as Lilly Slater. By 1881 Emma and James Slater were living in Woodlinkin, Codnor and Loscoe, close to Heanor and Eastwood, on the Derbyshire side of the border. On each census up to 1911 their address on the census is Woodlinkin. Emma and James had nine children: six girls and 3 boys, the last, Alfred Frederick, born in 1901. Emma and James lived three doors up from the Thorn Tree pub in Woodlinkin, Codnor:  Emma Slater died in 1935 at the age of 84. IN 
 LOVING MEMORY OF
 EMMA SLATER
 (OF WOODLINKIN)
 WHO DIED
 SEPT 12th 1935
 AGED 84 YEARS
 AT RESTCrosshill Cemetery, Codnor, Amber Valley Borough, Derbyshire, England:  Charles John Housley 1949- February 5, 2022 at 1:59 pm #6272In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesThe Housley Letters The Carringtons Carrington Farm, Smalley:  Ellen Carrington was born in 1795. Her father William Carrington 1755-1833 was from Smalley. Her mother Mary Malkin 1765-1838 was from Ellastone, in Staffordshire. Ellastone is on the Derbyshire border and very close to Ashboure, where Ellen married William Housley. From Barbara Housley’s Narrative on the Letters: Ellen’s family was evidently rather prominant in Smalley. Two Carringtons (John and William) served on the Parish Council in 1794. Parish records are full of Carrington marriages and christenings. The letters refer to a variety of “uncles” who were probably Ellen’s brothers, but could be her uncles. These include: RICHARD Probably the youngest Uncle, and certainly the most significant, is Richard. He was a trustee for some of the property which needed to be settled following Ellen’s death. Anne wrote in 1854 that Uncle Richard “has got a new house built” and his daughters are “fine dashing young ladies–the belles of Smalley.” Then she added, “Aunt looks as old as my mother.” Richard was born somewhere between 1808 and 1812. Since Richard was a contemporary of the older Housley children, “Aunt,” who was three years younger, should not look so old! Richard Carrington and Harriet Faulkner were married in Repton in 1833. A daughter Elizabeth was baptised March 24, 1834. In July 1872, Joseph wrote: “Elizabeth is married too and a large family and is living in Uncle Thomas’s house for he is dead.” Elizabeth married Ayres (Eyres) Clayton of Lascoe. His occupation was listed as joiner and shopkeeper. They were married before 1864 since Elizabeth Clayton witnessed her sister’s marriage. Their children in April 1871 were Selina (1863), Agnes Maria (1866) and Elizabeth Ann (1868). A fourth daughter, Alice Augusta, was born in 1872 or 1873, probably by July 1872 to fit Joseph’s description “large family”! A son Charles Richard was born in 1880. An Elizabeth Ann Clayton married John Arthur Woodhouse on May 12, 1913. He was a carpenter. His father was a miner. Elizabeth Ann’s father, Ayres, was also a carpenter. John Arthur’s age was given as 25. Elizabeth Ann’s age was given as 33 or 38. However, if she was born in 1868, her age would be 45. Possibly this is another case of a child being named for a deceased sibling. If she were 38 and born in 1875, she would fill the gap between Alice Augusta and Charles Richard. Selina Clayton, who would have been 18, is not listed in the household in 1881. She died on June 11, 1914 at age 51. Agnes Maria Clayton died at the age of 25 and was buried March 31, 1891. Charles Richard died at the age of 5 and was buried on February 4, 1886. A Charles James Clayton, 18 months, was buried June 8, 1889 in Heanor. Richard Carrington’s second daughter, Selina, born in 1837, married Walker Martin (b.1835) on February 11, 1864 and they were living at Kidsley Park Farm in 1872, according to a letter from Joseph, and, according to the census, were still there in 1881. This 100 acre farm was formerly the home of Daniel Smith and his daughter Elizabeth Davy Barber. Selina and Walker had at least five children: Elizabeth Ann (1865), Harriet Georgianna (1866/7), Alice Marian (September 6, 1868), Philip Richard (1870), and Walker (1873). In December 1972, Joseph mentioned the death of Philip Walker, a farmer of Prospect Farm, Shipley. This was probably Walker Martin’s grandfather, since Walker was born in Shipley. The stock was to be sold the following Monday, but his daughter (Walker’s mother?) died the next day. Walker’s father was named Thomas. An Annie Georgianna Martin age 13 of Shipley died in April of 1859. Selina Martin died on October 29, 1906 but her estate was not settled until November 14, 1910. Her gross estate was worth L223.56. Her son Walker and her daughter Harriet Georgiana were her trustees and executers. Walker was to get Selina’s half of Richard’s farm. Harriet Georgiana and Alice Marian were to be allowed to live with him. Philip Richard received L25. Elizabeth Ann was already married to someone named Smith. Richard and Harriet may also have had a son George. In 1851 a Harriet Carrington and her three year old son George were living with her step-father John Benniston in Heanor. John may have been recently widowed and needed her help. Or, the Carrington home may have been inadequate since Anne reported a new one was built by 1854. Selina’s second daughter’s name testifies to the presence of a “George” in the family! Could the death of this son account for the haggard appearance Anne described when she wrote: “Aunt looks as old as my mother?” 
 Harriet was buried May 19, 1866. She was 55 when she died.In 1881, Georgianna then 14, was living with her grandfather and his niece, Zilpah Cooper, age 38–who lived with Richard on his 63 acre farm as early as 1871. A Zilpah, daughter of William and Elizabeth, was christened October 1843. Her brother, William Walter, was christened in 1846 and married Anna Maria Saint in 1873. There are four Selina Coopers–one had a son William Thomas Bartrun Cooper christened in 1864; another had a son William Cooper christened in 1873. Our Zilpah was born in Bretley 1843. She died at age 49 and was buried on September 24, 1892. In her will, which was witnessed by Selina Martin, Zilpah’s sister, Frances Elizabeth Cleave, wife of Horatio Cleave of Leicester is mentioned. James Eley and Francis Darwin Huish (Richard’s soliciter) were executers. Richard died June 10, 1892, and was buried on June 13. He was 85. As might be expected, Richard’s will was complicated. Harriet Georgiana Martin and Zilpah Cooper were to share his farm. If neither wanted to live there it was to go to Georgiana’s cousin Selina Clayton. However, Zilpah died soon after Richard. Originally, he left his piano, parlor and best bedroom furniture to his daughter Elizabeth Clayton. Then he revoked everything but the piano. He arranged for the payment of £150 which he owed. Later he added a codicil explaining that the debt was paid but he had borrowed £200 from someone else to do it! Richard left a good deal of property including: The house and garden in Smalley occupied by Eyres Clayton with four messuages and gardens adjoining and large garden below and three messuages at the south end of the row with the frame work knitters shop and garden adjoining; a dwelling house used as a public house with a close of land; a small cottage and garden and four cottages and shop and gardens. THOMAS In August 1854, Anne wrote “Uncle Thomas is about as usual.” A Thomas Carrington married a Priscilla Walker in 1810. Their children were baptised in August 1830 at the same time as the Housley children who at that time ranged in age from 3 to 17. The oldest of Thomas and Priscilla’s children, Henry, was probably at least 17 as he was married by 1836. Their youngest son, William Thomas, born 1830, may have been Mary Ellen Weston’s beau. However, the only Richard whose christening is recorded (1820), was the son of Thomas and Lucy. In 1872 Joseph reported that Richard’s daughter Elizabeth was married and living in Uncle Thomas’s house. In 1851, Alfred Smith lived in house 25, Foulks lived in 26, Thomas and Priscilla lived in 27, Bennetts lived in 28, Allard lived in 29 and Day lived in 30. Thomas and Priscilla do not appear in 1861. In 1871 Elizabeth Ann and Ayres Clayton lived in House 54. None of the families listed as neighbors in 1851 remained. However, Joseph Carrington, who lived in house 19 in 1851, lived in house 51 in 1871. JOHN In August 1854, Anne wrote: “Uncle John is with Will and Frank has been home in a comfortable place in Cotmanhay.” Although John and William are two of the most popular Carrington names, only two John’s have sons named William. John and Rachel Buxton Carrington had a son William christened in 1788. At the time of the letters this John would have been over 100 years old. Their son John and his wife Ann had a son William who was born in 1805. However, this William age 46 was living with his widowed mother in 1851. A Robert Carrington and his wife Ann had a son John born 1n 1805. He would be the right age to be a brother to Francis Carrington discussed below. This John was living with his widowed mother in 1851 and was unmarried. There are no known Williams in this family grouping. A William Carrington of undiscovered parentage was born in 1821. It is also possible that the Will in question was Anne’s brother Will Housley. –Two Francis Carringtons appear in the 1841 census both of them aged 35. One is living with Richard and Harriet Carrington. The other is living next door to Samuel and Ellen Carrington Kerry (the trustee for “father’s will”!). The next name in this sequence is John Carrington age 15 who does not seem to live with anyone! but may be part of the Kerry household. FRANK (see above) While Anne did not preface her mention of the name Frank with an “Uncle,” Joseph referred to Uncle Frank and James Carrington in the same sentence. A James Carrington was born in 1814 and had a wife Sarah. He worked as a framework knitter. James may have been a son of William and Anne Carrington. He lived near Richard according to the 1861 census. Other children of William and Anne are Hannah (1811), William (1815), John (1816), and Ann (1818). An Ann Carrington married a Frank Buxton in 1819. This might be “Uncle Frank.” An Ellen Carrington was born to John and Rachel Carrington in 1785. On October 25, 1809, a Samuel Kerry married an Ellen Carrington. However this Samuel Kerry is not the trustee involved in settling Ellen’s estate. John Carrington died July 1815. William and Mary Carrington:  February 4, 2022 at 3:17 pm #6269 February 4, 2022 at 3:17 pm #6269In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesThe Housley Letters From Barbara Housley’s Narrative on the Letters. William Housley (1781-1848) and Ellen Carrington were married on May 30, 1814 at St. Oswald’s church in Ashbourne. William died in 1848 at the age of 67 of “disease of lungs and general debility”. Ellen died in 1872. Marriage of William Housley and Ellen Carrington in Ashbourne in 1814:  Parish records show three children for William and his first wife, Mary, Ellens’ sister, who were married December 29, 1806: Mary Ann, christened in 1808 and mentioned frequently in the letters; Elizabeth, christened in 1810, but never mentioned in any letters; and William, born in 1812, probably referred to as Will in the letters. Mary died in 1813. William and Ellen had ten children: John, Samuel, Edward, Anne, Charles, George, Joseph, Robert, Emma, and Joseph. The first Joseph died at the age of four, and the last son was also named Joseph. Anne never married, Charles emigrated to Australia in 1851, and George to USA, also in 1851. The letters are to George, from his sisters and brothers in England. The following are excerpts of those letters, including excerpts of Barbara Housley’s “Narrative on Historic Letters”. They are grouped according to who they refer to, rather than chronological order. ELLEN HOUSLEY 1795-1872 Joseph wrote that when Emma was married, Ellen “broke up the comfortable home and the things went to Derby and she went to live with them but Derby didn’t agree with her so she left again leaving her things behind and came to live with John in the new house where she died.” Ellen was listed with John’s household in the 1871 census. 
 In May 1872, the Ilkeston Pioneer carried this notice: “Mr. Hopkins will sell by auction on Saturday next the eleventh of May 1872 the whole of the useful furniture, sewing machine, etc. nearly new on the premises of the late Mrs. Housley at Smalley near Heanor in the county of Derby. Sale at one o’clock in the afternoon.”Ellen’s family was evidently rather prominant in Smalley. Two Carringtons (John and William) served on the Parish Council in 1794. Parish records are full of Carrington marriages and christenings; census records confirm many of the family groupings. In June of 1856, Emma wrote: “Mother looks as well as ever and was told by a lady the other day that she looked handsome.” Later she wrote: “Mother is as stout as ever although she sometimes complains of not being able to do as she used to.” Mary’s children: MARY ANN HOUSLEY 1808-1878 There were hard feelings between Mary Ann and Ellen and her children. Anne wrote: “If you remember we were not very friendly when you left. They never came and nothing was too bad for Mary Ann to say of Mother and me, but when Robert died Mother sent for her to the funeral but she did not think well to come so we took no more notice. She would not allow her children to come either.” Mary Ann was unlucky in love! In Anne’s second letter she wrote: “William Carrington is paying Mary Ann great attention. He is living in London but they write to each other….We expect it will be a match.” Apparantly the courtship was stormy for in 1855, Emma wrote: “Mary Ann’s wedding with William Carrington has dropped through after she had prepared everything, dresses and all for the occassion.” Then in 1856, Emma wrote: “William Carrington and Mary Ann are separated. They wore him out with their nonsense.” Whether they ever married is unclear. Joseph wrote in 1872: “Mary Ann was married but her husband has left her. She is in very poor health. She has one daughter and they are living with their mother at Smalley.” Regarding William Carrington, Emma supplied this bit of news: “His sister, Mrs. Lily, has eloped with a married man. Is she not a nice person!” WILLIAM HOUSLEY JR. 1812-1890 According to a letter from Anne, Will’s two sons and daughter were sent to learn dancing so they would be “fit for any society.” Will’s wife was Dorothy Palfry. They were married in Denby on October 20, 1836 when Will was 24. According to the 1851 census, Will and Dorothy had three sons: Alfred 14, Edwin 12, and William 10. All three boys were born in Denby. In his letter of May 30, 1872, after just bemoaning that all of his brothers and sisters are gone except Sam and John, Joseph added: “Will is living still.” In another 1872 letter Joseph wrote, “Will is living at Heanor yet and carrying on his cattle dealing.” The 1871 census listed Will, 59, and his son William, 30, of Lascoe Road, Heanor, as cattle dealers. Ellen’s children: JOHN HOUSLEY 1815-1893 John married Sarah Baggally in Morely in 1838. They had at least six children. Elizabeth (born 2 May 1838) was “out service” in 1854. In her “third year out,” Elizabeth was described by Anne as “a very nice steady girl but quite a woman in appearance.” One of her positions was with a Mrs. Frearson in Heanor. Emma wrote in 1856: “Elizabeth is still at Mrs. Frearson. She is such a fine stout girl you would not know her.” Joseph wrote in 1872 that Elizabeth was in service with Mrs. Eliza Sitwell at Derby. (About 1850, Miss Eliza Wilmot-Sitwell provided for a small porch with a handsome Norman doorway at the west end of the St. John the Baptist parish church in Smalley.) According to Elizabeth’s birth certificate and the 1841 census, John was a butcher. By 1851, the household included a nurse and a servant, and John was listed as a “victular.” Anne wrote in February 1854, “John has left the Public House a year and a half ago. He is living where Plumbs (Ann Plumb witnessed William’s death certificate with her mark) did and Thomas Allen has the land. He has been working at James Eley’s all winter.” In 1861, Ellen lived with John and Sarah and the three boys. John sold his share in the inheritance from their mother and disappeared after her death. (He died in Doncaster, Yorkshire, in 1893.) At that time Charles, the youngest would have been 21. Indeed, Joseph wrote in July 1872: “John’s children are all grown up”. In May 1872, Joseph wrote: “For what do you think, John has sold his share and he has acted very bad since his wife died and at the same time he sold all his furniture. You may guess I have never seen him but once since poor mother’s funeral and he is gone now no one knows where.” In February 1874 Joseph wrote: “You want to know what made John go away. Well, I will give you one reason. I think I told you that when his wife died he persuaded me to leave Derby and come to live with him. Well so we did and dear Harriet to keep his house. Well he insulted my wife and offered things to her that was not proper and my dear wife had the power to resist his unmanly conduct. I did not think he could of served me such a dirty trick so that is one thing dear brother. He could not look me in the face when we met. Then after we left him he got a woman in the house and I suppose they lived as man and wife. She caught the small pox and died and there he was by himself like some wild man. Well dear brother I could not go to him again after he had served me and mine as he had and I believe he was greatly in debt too so that he sold his share out of the property and when he received the money at Belper he went away and has never been seen by any of us since but I have heard of him being at Sheffield enquiring for Sam Caldwell. You will remember him. He worked in the Nag’s Head yard but I have heard nothing no more of him.” A mention of a John Housley of Heanor in the Nottinghma Journal 1875. I don’t know for sure if the John mentioned here is the brother John who Joseph describes above as behaving improperly to his wife. John Housley had a son Joseph, born in 1840, and John’s wife Sarah died in 1870.  In 1876, the solicitor wrote to George: “Have you heard of John Housley? He is entitled to Robert’s share and I want him to claim it.” SAMUEL HOUSLEY 1816- Sam married Elizabeth Brookes of Sutton Coldfield, and they had three daughters: Elizabeth, Mary Anne and Catherine. Elizabeth his wife died in 1849, a few months after Samuel’s father William died in 1848. The particular circumstances relating to these individuals have been discussed in previous chapters; the following are letter excerpts relating to them. Death of William Housley 15 Dec 1848, and Elizabeth Housley 5 April 1849, Smalley:  Joseph wrote in December 1872: “I saw one of Sam’s daughters, the youngest Kate, you would remember her a baby I dare say. She is very comfortably married.” In the same letter (December 15, 1872), Joseph wrote: “I think we have now found all out now that is concerned in the matter for there was only Sam that we did not know his whereabouts but I was informed a week ago that he is dead–died about three years ago in Birmingham Union. Poor Sam. He ought to have come to a better end than that….His daughter and her husband went to Brimingham and also to Sutton Coldfield that is where he married his wife from and found out his wife’s brother. It appears he has been there and at Birmingham ever since he went away but ever fond of drink.” (Sam, however, was still alive in 1871, living as a lodger at the George and Dragon Inn, Henley in Arden. And no trace of Sam has been found since. It would appear that Sam did not want to be found.) EDWARD HOUSLEY 1819-1843 Edward died before George left for USA in 1851, and as such there is no mention of him in the letters. ANNE HOUSLEY 1821-1856 Anne wrote two letters to her brother George between February 1854 and her death in 1856. Apparently she suffered from a lung disease for she wrote: “I can say you will be surprised I am still living and better but still cough and spit a deal. Can do nothing but sit and sew.” According to the 1851 census, Anne, then 29, was a seamstress. Their friend, Mrs. Davy, wrote in March 1856: “This I send in a box to my Brother….The pincushion cover and pen wiper are Anne’s work–are for thy wife. She would have made it up had she been able.” Anne was not living at home at the time of the 1841 census. She would have been 19 or 20 and perhaps was “out service.” In her second letter Anne wrote: “It is a great trouble now for me to write…as the body weakens so does the mind often. I have been very weak all summer. That I continue is a wonder to all and to spit so much although much better than when you left home.” She also wrote: “You know I had a desire for America years ago. Were I in health and strength, it would be the land of my adoption.” In November 1855, Emma wrote, “Anne has been very ill all summer and has not been able to write or do anything.” Their neighbor Mrs. Davy wrote on March 21, 1856: “I fear Anne will not be long without a change.” In a black-edged letter the following June, Emma wrote: “I need not tell you how happy she was and how calmly and peacefully she died. She only kept in bed two days.” Certainly Anne was a woman of deep faith and strong religious convictions. When she wrote that they were hoping to hear of Charles’ success on the gold fields she added: “But I would rather hear of him having sought and found the Pearl of great price than all the gold Australia can produce, (For what shall it profit a man if he gain the whole world and lose his soul?).” Then she asked George: “I should like to learn how it was you were first led to seek pardon and a savior. I do feel truly rejoiced to hear you have been led to seek and find this Pearl through the workings of the Holy Spirit and I do pray that He who has begun this good work in each of us may fulfill it and carry it on even unto the end and I can never doubt the willingness of Jesus who laid down his life for us. He who said whoever that cometh unto me I will in no wise cast out.” Anne’s will was probated October 14, 1856. Mr. William Davy of Kidsley Park appeared for the family. Her estate was valued at under £20. Emma was to receive fancy needlework, a four post bedstead, feather bed and bedding, a mahogany chest of drawers, plates, linen and china. Emma was also to receive Anne’s writing desk. There was a condition that Ellen would have use of these items until her death. The money that Anne was to receive from her grandfather, William Carrington, and her father, William Housley was to be distributed one third to Joseph, one third to Emma, and one third to be divided between her four neices: John’s daughter Elizabeth, 18, and Sam’s daughters Elizabeth, 10, Mary Ann, 9 and Catharine, age 7 to be paid by the trustees as they think “most useful and proper.” Emma Lyon and Elizabeth Davy were the witnesses. The Carrington Farm:  CHARLES HOUSLEY 1823-1855 Charles went to Australia in 1851, and was last heard from in January 1853. According to the solicitor, who wrote to George on June 3, 1874, Charles had received advances on the settlement of their parent’s estate. “Your promissory note with the two signed by your brother Charles for 20 pounds he received from his father and 20 pounds he received from his mother are now in the possession of the court.” Charles and George were probably quite close friends. Anne wrote in 1854: “Charles inquired very particularly in both his letters after you.” According to Anne, Charles and a friend married two sisters. He and his father-in-law had a farm where they had 130 cows and 60 pigs. Whatever the trade he learned in England, he never worked at it once he reached Australia. While it does not seem that Charles went to Australia because gold had been discovered there, he was soon caught up in “gold fever”. Anne wrote: “I dare say you have heard of the immense gold fields of Australia discovered about the time he went. Thousands have since then emigrated to Australia, both high and low. Such accounts we heard in the papers of people amassing fortunes we could not believe. I asked him when I wrote if it was true. He said this was no exaggeration for people were making their fortune daily and he intended going to the diggings in six weeks for he could stay away no longer so that we are hoping to hear of his success if he is alive.” In March 1856, Mrs. Davy wrote: “I am sorry to tell thee they have had a letter from Charles’s wife giving account of Charles’s death of 6 months consumption at the Victoria diggings. He has left 2 children a boy and a girl William and Ellen.” In June of the same year in a black edged letter, Emma wrote: “I think Mrs. Davy mentioned Charles’s death in her note. His wife wrote to us. They have two children Helen and William. Poor dear little things. How much I should like to see them all. She writes very affectionately.” In December 1872, Joseph wrote: “I’m told that Charles two daughters has wrote to Smalley post office making inquiries about his share….” In January 1876, the solicitor wrote: “Charles Housley’s children have claimed their father’s share.” GEORGE HOUSLEY 1824-1877 George emigrated to the United states in 1851, arriving in July. The solicitor Abraham John Flint referred in a letter to a 15-pound advance which was made to George on June 9, 1851. This certainly was connected to his journey. George settled along the Delaware River in Bucks County, Pennsylvania. The letters from the solicitor were addressed to: Lahaska Post Office, Bucks County, Pennsylvania. George married Sarah Ann Hill on May 6, 1854 in Doylestown, Bucks County, Pennsylvania. In her first letter (February 1854), Anne wrote: “We want to know who and what is this Miss Hill you name in your letter. What age is she? Send us all the particulars but I would advise you not to get married until you have sufficient to make a comfortable home.” Upon learning of George’s marriage, Anne wrote: “I hope dear brother you may be happy with your wife….I hope you will be as a son to her parents. Mother unites with me in kind love to you both and to your father and mother with best wishes for your health and happiness.” In 1872 (December) Joseph wrote: “I am sorry to hear that sister’s father is so ill. It is what we must all come to some time and hope we shall meet where there is no more trouble.” Emma wrote in 1855, “We write in love to your wife and yourself and you must write soon and tell us whether there is a little nephew or niece and what you call them.” In June of 1856, Emma wrote: “We want to see dear Sarah Ann and the dear little boy. We were much pleased with the “bit of news” you sent.” The bit of news was the birth of John Eley Housley, January 11, 1855. Emma concluded her letter “Give our very kindest love to dear sister and dearest Johnnie.” In September 1872, Joseph wrote, “I was very sorry to hear that John your oldest had met with such a sad accident but I hope he is got alright again by this time.” In the same letter, Joseph asked: “Now I want to know what sort of a town you are living in or village. How far is it from New York? Now send me all particulars if you please.” In March 1873 Harriet asked Sarah Ann: “And will you please send me all the news at the place and what it is like for it seems to me that it is a wild place but you must tell me what it is like….”. The question of whether she was referring to Bucks County, Pennsylvania or some other place is raised in Joseph’s letter of the same week. 
 On March 17, 1873, Joseph wrote: “I was surprised to hear that you had gone so far away west. Now dear brother what ever are you doing there so far away from home and family–looking out for something better I suppose.”The solicitor wrote on May 23, 1874: “Lately I have not written because I was not certain of your address and because I doubted I had much interesting news to tell you.” Later, Joseph wrote concerning the problems settling the estate, “You see dear brother there is only me here on our side and I cannot do much. I wish you were here to help me a bit and if you think of going for another summer trip this turn you might as well run over here.” Apparently, George had indicated he might return to England for a visit in 1856. Emma wrote concerning the portrait of their mother which had been sent to George: “I hope you like mother’s portrait. I did not see it but I suppose it was not quite perfect about the eyes….Joseph and I intend having ours taken for you when you come over….Do come over before very long.” In March 1873, Joseph wrote: “You ask me what I think of you coming to England. I think as you have given the trustee power to sign for you I think you could do no good but I should like to see you once again for all that. I can’t say whether there would be anything amiss if you did come as you say it would be throwing good money after bad.” On June 10, 1875, the solicitor wrote: “I have been expecting to hear from you for some time past. Please let me hear what you are doing and where you are living and how I must send you your money.” George’s big news at that time was that on May 3, 1875, he had become a naturalized citizen “renouncing and abjuring all allegiance and fidelity to every foreign prince, potentate, state and sovereignity whatsoever, and particularly to Victoria Queen of Great Britain of whom he was before a subject.” ROBERT HOUSLEY 1832-1851 In 1854, Anne wrote: “Poor Robert. He died in August after you left he broke a blood vessel in the lung.” 
 From Joseph’s first letter we learn that Robert was 19 when he died: “Dear brother there have been a great many changes in the family since you left us. All is gone except myself and John and Sam–we have heard nothing of him since he left. Robert died first when he was 19 years of age. Then Anne and Charles too died in Australia and then a number of years elapsed before anyone else. Then John lost his wife, then Emma, and last poor dear mother died last January on the 11th.”Anne described Robert’s death in this way: “He had thrown up blood many times before in the spring but the last attack weakened him that he only lived a fortnight after. He died at Derby. Mother was with him. Although he suffered much he never uttered a murmur or regret and always a smile on his face for everyone that saw him. He will be regretted by all that knew him”. Robert died a resident of St. Peter’s Parish, Derby, but was buried in Smalley on August 16, 1851. 
 Apparently Robert was apprenticed to be a joiner for, according to Anne, Joseph took his place: “Joseph wanted to be a joiner. We thought we could do no better than let him take Robert’s place which he did the October after and is there still.”In 1876, the solicitor wrote to George: “Have you heard of John Housley? He is entitled to Robert’s share and I want him to claim it.” EMMA HOUSLEY 1836-1871 Emma was not mentioned in Anne’s first letter. In the second, Anne wrote that Emma was living at Spondon with two ladies in her “third situation,” and added, “She is grown a bouncing woman.” Anne described her sister well. Emma wrote in her first letter (November 12, 1855): “I must tell you that I am just 21 and we had my pudding last Sunday. I wish I could send you a piece.” From Emma’s letters we learn that she was living in Derby from May until November 1855 with Mr. Haywood, an iron merchant. She explained, “He has failed and I have been obliged to leave,” adding, “I expect going to a new situation very soon. It is at Belper.” In 1851 records, William Haywood, age 22, was listed as an iron foundry worker. In the 1857 Derby Directory, James and George were listed as iron and brass founders and ironmongers with an address at 9 Market Place, Derby. In June 1856, Emma wrote from “The Cedars, Ashbourne Road” where she was working for Mr. Handysides. 
 While she was working for Mr. Handysides, Emma wrote: “Mother is thinking of coming to live at Derby. That will be nice for Joseph and I.”Friargate and Ashbourne Road were located in St. Werburgh’s Parish. (In fact, St. Werburgh’s vicarage was at 185 Surrey Street. This clue led to the discovery of the record of Emma’s marriage on May 6, 1858, to Edwin Welch Harvey, son of Samuel Harvey in St. Werburgh’s.) In 1872, Joseph wrote: “Our sister Emma, she died at Derby at her own home for she was married. She has left two young children behind. The husband was the son of the man that I went apprentice to and has caused a great deal of trouble to our family and I believe hastened poor Mother’s death….”. Joseph added that he believed Emma’s “complaint” was consumption and that she was sick a good bit. Joseph wrote: “Mother was living with John when I came home (from Ascension Island around 1867? or to Smalley from Derby around 1870?) for when Emma was married she broke up the comfortable home and the things went to Derby and she went to live with them but Derby did not agree with her so she had to leave it again but left all her things there.” Emma Housley and Edwin Welch Harvey wedding, 1858:  JOSEPH HOUSLEY 1838-1893 We first hear of Joseph in a letter from Anne to George in 1854. “Joseph wanted to be a joiner. We thought we could do no better than let him take Robert’s place which he did the October after (probably 1851) and is there still. He is grown as tall as you I think quite a man.” Emma concurred in her first letter: “He is quite a man in his appearance and quite as tall as you.” From Emma we learn in 1855: “Joseph has left Mr. Harvey. He had not work to employ him. So mother thought he had better leave his indenture and be at liberty at once than wait for Harvey to be a bankrupt. He has got a very good place of work now and is very steady.” In June of 1856, Emma wrote “Joseph and I intend to have our portraits taken for you when you come over….Mother is thinking of coming to Derby. That will be nice for Joseph and I. Joseph is very hearty I am happy to say.” According to Joseph’s letters, he was married to Harriet Ballard. Joseph described their miraculous reunion in this way: “I must tell you that I have been abroad myself to the Island of Ascension. (Elsewhere he wrote that he was on the island when the American civil war broke out). I went as a Royal Marine and worked at my trade and saved a bit of money–enough to buy my discharge and enough to get married with but while I was out on the island who should I meet with there but my dear wife’s sister. (On two occasions Joseph and Harriet sent George the name and address of Harriet’s sister, Mrs. Brooks, in Susquehanna Depot, Pennsylvania, but it is not clear whether this was the same sister.) She was lady’s maid to the captain’s wife. Though I had never seen her before we got to know each other somehow so from that me and my wife recommenced our correspondence and you may be sure I wanted to get home to her. But as soon as I did get home that is to England I was not long before I was married and I have not regretted yet for we are very comfortable as well as circumstances will allow for I am only a journeyman joiner.” Proudly, Joseph wrote: “My little family consists of three nice children–John, Joseph and Susy Annie.” On her birth certificate, Susy Ann’s birthdate is listed as 1871. Parish records list a Lucy Annie christened in 1873. The boys were born in Derby, John in 1868 and Joseph in 1869. In his second letter, Joseph repeated: “I have got three nice children, a good wife and I often think is more than I have deserved.” On August 6, 1873, Joseph and Harriet wrote: “We both thank you dear sister for the pieces of money you sent for the children. I don’t know as I have ever see any before.” Joseph ended another letter: “Now I must close with our kindest love to you all and kisses from the children.” In Harriet’s letter to Sarah Ann (March 19, 1873), she promised: “I will send you myself and as soon as the weather gets warm as I can take the children to Derby, I will have them taken and send them, but it is too cold yet for we have had a very cold winter and a great deal of rain.” At this time, the children were all under 6 and the baby was not yet two. In March 1873 Joseph wrote: “I have been working down at Heanor gate there is a joiner shop there where Kings used to live I have been working there this winter and part of last summer but the wages is very low but it is near home that is one comfort.” (Heanor Gate is about 1/4 mile from Kidsley Grange. There was a school and industrial park there in 1988.) At this time Joseph and his family were living in “the big house–in Old Betty Hanson’s house.” The address in the 1871 census was Smalley Lane. A glimpse into Joseph’s personality is revealed by this remark to George in an 1872 letter: “Many thanks for your portrait and will send ours when we can get them taken for I never had but one taken and that was in my old clothes and dear Harriet is not willing to part with that. I tell her she ought to be satisfied with the original.” On one occasion Joseph and Harriet both sent seeds. (Marks are still visible on the paper.) Joseph sent “the best cow cabbage seed in the country–Robinson Champion,” and Harriet sent red cabbage–Shaw’s Improved Red. Possibly cow cabbage was also known as ox cabbage: “I hope you will have some good cabbages for the Ox cabbage takes all the prizes here. I suppose you will be taking the prizes out there with them.” Joseph wrote that he would put the name of the seeds by each “but I should think that will not matter. You will tell the difference when they come up.” George apparently would have liked Joseph to come to him as early as 1854. Anne wrote: “As to his coming to you that must be left for the present.” In 1872, Joseph wrote: “I have been thinking of making a move from here for some time before I heard from you for it is living from hand to mouth and never certain of a job long either.” Joseph then made plans to come to the United States in the spring of 1873. “For I intend all being well leaving England in the spring. Many thanks for your kind offer but I hope we shall be able to get a comfortable place before we have been out long.” Joseph promised to bring some things George wanted and asked: “What sort of things would be the best to bring out there for I don’t want to bring a lot that is useless.” Joseph’s plans are confirmed in a letter from the solicitor May 23, 1874: “I trust you are prospering and in good health. Joseph seems desirous of coming out to you when this is settled.” George must have been reminiscing about gooseberries (Heanor has an annual gooseberry show–one was held July 28, 1872) and Joseph promised to bring cuttings when they came: “Dear Brother, I could not get the gooseberries for they was all gathered when I received your letter but we shall be able to get some seed out the first chance and I shall try to bring some cuttings out along.” In the same letter that he sent the cabbage seeds Joseph wrote: “I have got some gooseberries drying this year for you. They are very fine ones but I have only four as yet but I was promised some more when they were ripe.” In another letter Joseph sent gooseberry seeds and wrote their names: Victoria, Gharibaldi and Globe. In September 1872 Joseph wrote; “My wife is anxious to come. I hope it will suit her health for she is not over strong.” Elsewhere Joseph wrote that Harriet was “middling sometimes. She is subject to sick headaches. It knocks her up completely when they come on.” In December 1872 Joseph wrote, “Now dear brother about us coming to America you know we shall have to wait until this affair is settled and if it is not settled and thrown into Chancery I’m afraid we shall have to stay in England for I shall never be able to save money enough to bring me out and my family but I hope of better things.” On July 19, 1875 Abraham Flint (the solicitor) wrote: “Joseph Housley has removed from Smalley and is working on some new foundry buildings at Little Chester near Derby. He lives at a village called Little Eaton near Derby. If you address your letter to him as Joseph Housley, carpenter, Little Eaton near Derby that will no doubt find him.” George did not save any letters from Joseph after 1874, hopefully he did reach him at Little Eaton. Joseph and his family are not listed in either Little Eaton or Derby on the 1881 census. In his last letter (February 11, 1874), Joseph sounded very discouraged and wrote that Harriet’s parents were very poorly and both had been “in bed for a long time.” In addition, Harriet and the children had been ill. 
 The move to Little Eaton may indicate that Joseph received his settlement because in August, 1873, he wrote: “I think this is bad news enough and bad luck too, but I have had little else since I came to live at Kiddsley cottages but perhaps it is all for the best if one could only think so. I have begun to think there will be no chance for us coming over to you for I am afraid there will not be so much left as will bring us out without it is settled very shortly but I don’t intend leaving this house until it is settled either one way or the other. “Joseph Housley and the Kiddsley cottages:  February 2, 2022 at 1:15 pm #6268 February 2, 2022 at 1:15 pm #6268In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesFrom Tanganyika with Love continued part 9 With thanks to Mike Rushby. Lyamungu 3rd January 1945 Dearest Family. We had a novel Christmas this year. We decided to avoid the expense of 
 entertaining and being entertained at Lyamungu, and went off to spend Christmas
 camping in a forest on the Western slopes of Kilimanjaro. George decided to combine
 business with pleasure and in this way we were able to use Government transport.
 We set out the day before Christmas day and drove along the road which skirts
 the slopes of Kilimanjaro and first visited a beautiful farm where Philip Teare, the ex
 Game Warden, and his wife Mary are staying. We had afternoon tea with them and then
 drove on in to the natural forest above the estate and pitched our tent beside a small
 clear mountain stream. We decorated the tent with paper streamers and a few small
 balloons and John found a small tree of the traditional shape which we decorated where
 it stood with tinsel and small ornaments.We put our beer, cool drinks for the children and bottles of fresh milk from Simba 
 Estate, in the stream and on Christmas morning they were as cold as if they had been in
 the refrigerator all night. There were not many presents for the children, there never are,
 but they do not seem to mind and are well satisfied with a couple of balloons apiece,
 sweets, tin whistles and a book each.George entertain the children before breakfast. He can make a magical thing out 
 of the most ordinary balloon. The children watched entranced as he drew on his pipe
 and then blew the smoke into the balloon. He then pinched the neck of the balloon
 between thumb and forefinger and released the smoke in little puffs. Occasionally the
 balloon ejected a perfect smoke ring and the forest rang with shouts of “Do it again
 Daddy.” Another trick was to blow up the balloon to maximum size and then twist the
 neck tightly before releasing. Before subsiding the balloon darted about in a crazy
 fashion causing great hilarity. Such fun, at the cost of a few pence.After breakfast George went off to fish for trout. John and Jim decided that they 
 also wished to fish so we made rods out of sticks and string and bent pins and they
 fished happily, but of course quite unsuccessfully, for hours. Both of course fell into the
 stream and got soaked, but I was prepared for this, and the little stream was so shallow
 that they could not come to any harm. Henry played happily in the sand and I had a
 most peaceful morning.Hamisi roasted a chicken in a pot over the camp fire and the jelly set beautifully in the 
 stream. So we had grilled trout and chicken for our Christmas dinner. I had of course
 taken an iced cake for the occasion and, all in all, it was a very successful Christmas day.
 On Boxing day we drove down to the plains where George was to investigate a
 report of game poaching near the Ngassari Furrow. This is a very long ditch which has
 been dug by the Government for watering the Masai stock in the area. It is also used by
 game and we saw herds of zebra and wildebeest, and some Grant’s Gazelle and
 giraffe, all comparatively tame. At one point a small herd of zebra raced beside the lorry
 apparently enjoying the fun of a gallop. They were all sleek and fat and looked wild and
 beautiful in action.We camped a considerable distance from the water but this precaution did not 
 save us from the mosquitoes which launched a vicious attack on us after sunset, so that
 we took to our beds unusually early. They were on the job again when we got up at
 sunrise so I was very glad when we were once more on our way home.“I like Christmas safari. Much nicer that silly old party,” said John. I agree but I think 
 it is time that our children learned to play happily with others. There are no other young
 children at Lyamungu though there are two older boys and a girl who go to boarding
 school in Nairobi.On New Years Day two Army Officers from the military camp at Moshi, came for 
 tea and to talk game hunting with George. I think they rather enjoy visiting a home and
 seeing children and pets around.Eleanor. Lyamungu 14 May 1945 Dearest Family. So the war in Europe is over at last. It is such marvellous news that I can hardly 
 believe it. To think that as soon as George can get leave we will go to England and
 bring Ann and George home with us to Tanganyika. When we know when this leave can
 be arranged we will want Kate to join us here as of course she must go with us to
 England to meet George’s family. She has become so much a part of your lives that I
 know it will be a wrench for you to give her up but I know that you will all be happy to
 think that soon our family will be reunited.The V.E. celebrations passed off quietly here. We all went to Moshi to see the 
 Victory Parade of the King’s African Rifles and in the evening we went to a celebration
 dinner at the Game Warden’s house. Besides ourselves the Moores had invited the
 Commanding Officer from Moshi and a junior officer. We had a very good dinner and
 many toasts including one to Mrs Moore’s brother, Oliver Milton who is fighting in Burma
 and has recently been awarded the Military Cross.There was also a celebration party for the children in the grounds of the Moshi 
 Club. Such a spread! I think John and Jim sampled everything. We mothers were
 having our tea separately and a friend laughingly told me to turn around and have a look.
 I did, and saw the long tea tables now deserted by all the children but my two sons who
 were still eating steadily, and finding the party more exciting than the game of Musical
 Bumps into which all the other children had entered with enthusiasm.There was also an extremely good puppet show put on by the Italian prisoners 
 of war from the camp at Moshi. They had made all the puppets which included well
 loved characters like Snow White and the Seven Dwarfs and the Babes in the Wood as
 well as more sophisticated ones like an irritable pianist and a would be prima donna. The
 most popular puppets with the children were a native askari and his family – a very
 happy little scene. I have never before seen a puppet show and was as entranced as
 the children. It is amazing what clever manipulation and lighting can do. I believe that the
 Italians mean to take their puppets to Nairobi and am glad to think that there, they will
 have larger audiences to appreciate their art.George has just come in, and I paused in my writing to ask him for the hundredth 
 time when he thinks we will get leave. He says I must be patient because it may be a
 year before our turn comes. Shipping will be disorganised for months to come and we
 cannot expect priority simply because we have been separated so long from our
 children. The same situation applies to scores of other Government Officials.
 I have decided to write the story of my childhood in South Africa and about our
 life together in Tanganyika up to the time Ann and George left the country. I know you
 will have told Kate these stories, but Ann and George were so very little when they left
 home that I fear that they cannot remember much.My Mother-in-law will have told them about their father but she can tell them little 
 about me. I shall send them one chapter of my story each month in the hope that they
 may be interested and not feel that I am a stranger when at last we meet again.Eleanor. Lyamungu 19th September 1945 Dearest Family. In a months time we will be saying good-bye to Lyamungu. George is to be 
 transferred to Mbeya and I am delighted, not only as I look upon Mbeya as home, but
 because there is now a primary school there which John can attend. I feel he will make
 much better progress in his lessons when he realises that all children of his age attend
 school. At present he is putting up a strong resistance to learning to read and spell, but
 he writes very neatly, does his sums accurately and shows a real talent for drawing. If
 only he had the will to learn I feel he would do very well.Jim now just four, is too young for lessons but too intelligent to be interested in 
 the ayah’s attempts at entertainment. Yes I’ve had to engage a native girl to look after
 Henry from 9 am to 12.30 when I supervise John’s Correspondence Course. She is
 clean and amiable, but like most African women she has no initiative at all when it comes
 to entertaining children. Most African men and youths are good at this.I don’t regret our stay at Lyamungu. It is a beautiful spot and the change to the 
 cooler climate after the heat of Morogoro has been good for all the children. John is still
 tall for his age but not so thin as he was and much less pale. He is a handsome little lad
 with his large brown eyes in striking contrast to his fair hair. He is wary of strangers but
 very observant and quite uncanny in the way he sums up people. He seldom gets up
 to mischief but I have a feeling he eggs Jim on. Not that Jim needs egging.Jim has an absolute flair for mischief but it is all done in such an artless manner that 
 it is not easy to punish him. He is a very sturdy child with a cap of almost black silky hair,
 eyes brown, like mine, and a large mouth which is quick to smile and show most beautiful
 white and even teeth. He is most popular with all the native servants and the Game
 Scouts. The servants call Jim, ‘Bwana Tembo’ (Mr Elephant) because of his sturdy
 build.Henry, now nearly two years old, is quite different from the other two in 
 appearance. He is fair complexioned and fair haired like Ann and Kate, with large, black
 lashed, light grey eyes. He is a good child, not so merry as Jim was at his age, nor as
 shy as John was. He seldom cries, does not care to be cuddled and is independent and
 strong willed. The servants call Henry, ‘Bwana Ndizi’ (Mr Banana) because he has an
 inexhaustible appetite for this fruit. Fortunately they are very inexpensive here. We buy
 an entire bunch which hangs from a beam on the back verandah, and pluck off the
 bananas as they ripen. This way there is no waste and the fruit never gets bruised as it
 does in greengrocers shops in South Africa. Our three boys make a delightful and
 interesting trio and I do wish you could see them for yourselves.We are delighted with the really beautiful photograph of Kate. She is an 
 extraordinarily pretty child and looks so happy and healthy and a great credit to you.
 Now that we will be living in Mbeya with a school on the doorstep I hope that we will
 soon be able to arrange for her return home.Eleanor. c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 30th October 1945 Dearest Family. How nice to be able to write c/o Game Dept. Mbeya at the head of my letters. 
 We arrived here safely after a rather tiresome journey and are installed in a tiny house on
 the edge of the township.We left Lyamungu early on the morning of the 22nd. Most of our goods had 
 been packed on the big Ford lorry the previous evening, but there were the usual
 delays and farewells. Of our servants, only the cook, Hamisi, accompanied us to
 Mbeya. Japhet, Tovelo and the ayah had to be paid off and largesse handed out.
 Tovelo’s granny had come, bringing a gift of bananas, and she also brought her little
 granddaughter to present a bunch of flowers. The child’s little scolded behind is now
 completely healed. Gifts had to be found for them too.At last we were all aboard and what a squash it was! Our few pieces of furniture 
 and packing cases and trunks, the cook, his wife, the driver and the turney boy, who
 were to take the truck back to Lyamungu, and all their bits and pieces, bunches of
 bananas and Fanny the dog were all crammed into the body of the lorry. George, the
 children and I were jammed together in the cab. Before we left George looked
 dubiously at the tyres which were very worn and said gloomily that he thought it most
 unlikely that we would make our destination, Dodoma.Too true! Shortly after midday, near Kwakachinja, we blew a back tyre and there 
 was a tedious delay in the heat whilst the wheel was changed. We were now without a
 spare tyre and George said that he would not risk taking the Ford further than Babati,
 which is less than half way to Dodoma. He drove very slowly and cautiously to Babati
 where he arranged with Sher Mohammed, an Indian trader, for a lorry to take us to
 Dodoma the next morning.It had been our intention to spend the night at the furnished Government 
 Resthouse at Babati but when we got there we found that it was already occupied by
 several District Officers who had assembled for a conference. So, feeling rather
 disgruntled, we all piled back into the lorry and drove on to a place called Bereku where
 we spent an uncomfortable night in a tumbledown hut.Before dawn next morning Sher Mohammed’s lorry drove up, and there was a 
 scramble to dress by the light of a storm lamp. The lorry was a very dilapidated one and
 there was already a native woman passenger in the cab. I felt so tired after an almost
 sleepless night that I decided to sit between the driver and this woman with the sleeping
 Henry on my knee. It was as well I did, because I soon found myself dosing off and
 drooping over towards the woman. Had she not been there I might easily have fallen
 out as the battered cab had no door. However I was alert enough when daylight came
 and changed places with the woman to our mutual relief. She was now able to converse
 with the African driver and I was able to enjoy the scenery and the fresh air!
 George, John and Jim were less comfortable. They sat in the lorry behind the
 cab hemmed in by packing cases. As the lorry was an open one the sun beat down
 unmercifully upon them until George, ever resourceful, moved a table to the front of the
 truck. The two boys crouched under this and so got shelter from the sun but they still had
 to endure the dust. Fanny complicated things by getting car sick and with one thing and
 another we were all jolly glad to get to Dodoma.We spent the night at the Dodoma Hotel and after hot baths, a good meal and a 
 good nights rest we cheerfully boarded a bus of the Tanganyika Bus Service next
 morning to continue our journey to Mbeya. The rest of the journey was uneventful. We slept two nights on the road, the first at Iringa Hotel and the second at Chimala. We
 reached Mbeya on the 27th.I was rather taken aback when I first saw the little house which has been allocated 
 to us. I had become accustomed to the spacious houses we had in Morogoro and
 Lyamungu. However though the house is tiny it is secluded and has a long garden
 sloping down to the road in front and another long strip sloping up behind. The front
 garden is shaded by several large cypress and eucalyptus trees but the garden behind
 the house has no shade and consists mainly of humpy beds planted with hundreds of
 carnations sadly in need of debudding. I believe that the previous Game Ranger’s wife
 cultivated the carnations and, by selling them, raised money for War Funds.
 Like our own first home, this little house is built of sun dried brick. Its original
 owners were Germans. It is now rented to the Government by the Custodian of Enemy
 Property, and George has his office in another ex German house.This afternoon we drove to the school to arrange about enrolling John there. The 
 school is about four miles out of town. It was built by the German settlers in the late
 1930’s and they were justifiably proud of it. It consists of a great assembly hall and
 classrooms in one block and there are several attractive single storied dormitories. This
 school was taken over by the Government when the Germans were interned on the
 outbreak of war and many improvements have been made to the original buildings. The
 school certainly looks very attractive now with its grassed playing fields and its lawns and
 bright flower beds.The Union Jack flies from a tall flagpole in front of the Hall and all traces of the 
 schools German origin have been firmly erased. We met the Headmaster, Mr
 Wallington, and his wife and some members of the staff. The school is co-educational
 and caters for children from the age of seven to standard six. The leaving age is elastic
 owing to the fact that many Tanganyika children started school very late because of lack
 of educational facilities in this country.The married members of the staff have their own cottages in the grounds. The 
 Matrons have quarters attached to the dormitories for which they are responsible. I felt
 most enthusiastic about the school until I discovered that the Headmaster is adamant
 upon one subject. He utterly refuses to take any day pupils at the school. So now our
 poor reserved Johnny will have to adjust himself to boarding school life.
 We have arranged that he will start school on November 5th and I shall be very
 busy trying to assemble his school uniform at short notice. The clothing list is sensible.
 Boys wear khaki shirts and shorts on weekdays with knitted scarlet jerseys when the
 weather is cold. On Sundays they wear grey flannel shorts and blazers with the silver
 and scarlet school tie.Mbeya looks dusty, brown and dry after the lush evergreen vegetation of 
 Lyamungu, but I prefer this drier climate and there are still mountains to please the eye.
 In fact the lower slopes of Lolesa Mountain rise at the upper end of our garden.Eleanor. c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 21st November 1945 Dearest Family. We’re quite settled in now and I have got the little house fixed up to my 
 satisfaction. I have engaged a rather uncouth looking houseboy but he is strong and
 capable and now that I am not tied down in the mornings by John’s lessons I am able to
 go out occasionally in the mornings and take Jim and Henry to play with other children.
 They do not show any great enthusiasm but are not shy by nature as John is.
 I have had a good deal of heartache over putting John to boarding school. It
 would have been different had he been used to the company of children outside his
 own family, or if he had even known one child there. However he seems to be adjusting
 himself to the life, though slowly. At least he looks well and tidy and I am quite sure that
 he is well looked after.I must confess that when the time came for John to go to school I simply did not 
 have the courage to take him and he went alone with George, looking so smart in his
 new uniform – but his little face so bleak. The next day, Sunday, was visiting day but the
 Headmaster suggested that we should give John time to settle down and not visit him
 until Wednesday.When we drove up to the school I spied John on the far side of the field walking 
 all alone. Instead of running up with glad greetings, as I had expected, he came almost
 reluctently and had little to say. I asked him to show me his dormitory and classroom and
 he did so politely as though I were a stranger. At last he volunteered some information.
 “Mummy,” he said in an awed voice, Do you know on the night I came here they burnt a
 man! They had a big fire and they burnt him.” After a blank moment the penny dropped.
 Of course John had started school and November the fifth but it had never entered my
 head to tell him about that infamous character, Guy Fawkes!I asked John’s Matron how he had settled down. “Well”, she said thoughtfully, 
 “John is very good and has not cried as many of the juniors do when they first come
 here, but he seems to keep to himself all the time.” I went home very discouraged but
 on the Sunday John came running up with another lad of about his own age.” This is my
 friend Marks,” he announced proudly. I could have hugged Marks.Mbeya is very different from the small settlement we knew in the early 1930’s. 
 Gone are all the colourful characters from the Lupa diggings for the alluvial claims are all
 worked out now, gone also are our old friends the Menzies from the Pub and also most
 of the Government Officials we used to know. Mbeya has lost its character of a frontier
 township and has become almost suburban.The social life revolves around two places, the Club and the school. The Club 
 which started out as a little two roomed building, has been expanded and the golf
 course improved. There are also tennis courts and a good library considering the size of
 the community. There are frequent parties and dances, though most of the club revenue
 comes from Bar profits. The parties are relatively sober affairs compared with the parties
 of the 1930’s.The school provides entertainment of another kind. Both Mr and Mrs Wallington 
 are good amateur actors and I am told that they run an Amateur Dramatic Society. Every
 Wednesday afternoon there is a hockey match at the school. Mbeya town versus a
 mixed team of staff and scholars. The match attracts almost the whole European
 population of Mbeya. Some go to play hockey, others to watch, and others to snatch
 the opportunity to visit their children. I shall have to try to arrange a lift to school when
 George is away on safari.I have now met most of the local women and gladly renewed an old friendship 
 with Sheilagh Waring whom I knew two years ago at Morogoro. Sheilagh and I have
 much in common, the same disregard for the trappings of civilisation, the same sense of
 the ludicrous, and children. She has eight to our six and she has also been cut off by the
 war from two of her children. Sheilagh looks too young and pretty to be the mother of so
 large a family and is, in fact, several years younger than I am. her husband, Donald, is a
 large quiet man who, as far as I can judge takes life seriously.Our next door neighbours are the Bank Manager and his wife, a very pleasant 
 couple though we seldom meet. I have however had correspondence with the Bank
 Manager. Early on Saturday afternoon their houseboy brought a note. It informed me
 that my son was disturbing his rest by precipitating a heart attack. Was I aware that my
 son was about 30 feet up in a tree and balanced on a twig? I ran out and,sure enough,
 there was Jim, right at the top of the tallest eucalyptus tree. It would be the one with the
 mound of stones at the bottom! You should have heard me fluting in my most
 wheedling voice. “Sweets, Jimmy, come down slowly dear, I’ve some nice sweets for
 you.”I’ll bet that little story makes you smile. I remember how often you have told me 
 how, as a child, I used to make your hearts turn over because I had no fear of heights
 and how I used to say, “But that is silly, I won’t fall.” I know now only too well, how you
 must have felt.Eleanor. c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 14th January 1946 Dearest Family. I hope that by now you have my telegram to say that Kate got home safely 
 yesterday. It was wonderful to have her back and what a beautiful child she is! Kate
 seems to have enjoyed the train journey with Miss Craig, in spite of the tears she tells
 me she shed when she said good-bye to you. She also seems to have felt quite at
 home with the Hopleys at Salisbury. She flew from Salisbury in a small Dove aircraft
 and they had a smooth passage though Kate was a little airsick.I was so excited about her home coming! This house is so tiny that I had to turn 
 out the little store room to make a bedroom for her. With a fresh coat of whitewash and
 pretty sprigged curtains and matching bedspread, borrowed from Sheilagh Waring, the
 tiny room looks most attractive. I had also iced a cake, made ice-cream and jelly and
 bought crackers for the table so that Kate’s home coming tea could be a proper little
 celebration.I was pleased with my preparations and then, a few hours before the plane was 
 due, my crowned front tooth dropped out, peg and all! When my houseboy wants to
 describe something very tatty, he calls it “Second-hand Kabisa.” Kabisa meaning
 absolutely. That is an apt description of how I looked and felt. I decided to try some
 emergency dentistry. I think you know our nearest dentist is at Dar es Salaam five
 hundred miles away.First I carefully dried the tooth and with a match stick covered the peg and base 
 with Durofix. I then took the infants rubber bulb enema, sucked up some heat from a
 candle flame and pumped it into the cavity before filling that with Durofix. Then hopefully
 I stuck the tooth in its former position and held it in place for several minutes. No good. I
 sent the houseboy to a shop for Scotine and tried the whole process again. No good
 either.When George came home for lunch I appealed to him for advice. He jokingly 
 suggested that a maize seed jammed into the space would probably work, but when
 he saw that I really was upset he produced some chewing gum and suggested that I
 should try that . I did and that worked long enough for my first smile anyway.
 George and the three boys went to meet Kate but I remained at home to
 welcome her there. I was afraid that after all this time away Kate might be reluctant to
 rejoin the family but she threw her arms around me and said “Oh Mummy,” We both
 shed a few tears and then we both felt fine.How gay Kate is, and what an infectious laugh she has! The boys follow her 
 around in admiration. John in fact asked me, “Is Kate a Princess?” When I said
 “Goodness no, Johnny, she’s your sister,” he explained himself by saying, “Well, she
 has such golden hair.” Kate was less complementary. When I tucked her in bed last night
 she said, “Mummy, I didn’t expect my little brothers to be so yellow!” All three boys
 have been taking a course of Atebrin, an anti-malarial drug which tinges skin and eyeballs
 yellow.So now our tiny house is bursting at its seams and how good it feels to have one 
 more child under our roof. We are booked to sail for England in May and when we return
 we will have Ann and George home too. Then I shall feel really content.Eleanor. c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 2nd March 1946 Dearest Family. My life just now is uneventful but very busy. I am sewing hard and knitting fast to 
 try to get together some warm clothes for our leave in England. This is not a simple
 matter because woollen materials are in short supply and very expensive, and now that
 we have boarding school fees to pay for both Kate and John we have to budget very
 carefully indeed.Kate seems happy at school. She makes friends easily and seems to enjoy 
 communal life. John also seems reconciled to school now that Kate is there. He no
 longer feels that he is the only exile in the family. He seems to rub along with the other
 boys of his age and has a couple of close friends. Although Mbeya School is coeducational
 the smaller boys and girls keep strictly apart. It is considered extremely
 cissy to play with girls.The local children are allowed to go home on Sundays after church and may bring 
 friends home with them for the day. Both John and Kate do this and Sunday is a very
 busy day for me. The children come home in their Sunday best but bring play clothes to
 change into. There is always a scramble to get them to bath and change again in time to
 deliver them to the school by 6 o’clock.When George is home we go out to the school for the morning service. This is 
 taken by the Headmaster Mr Wallington, and is very enjoyable. There is an excellent
 school choir to lead the singing. The service is the Church of England one, but is
 attended by children of all denominations, except the Roman Catholics. I don’t think that
 more than half the children are British. A large proportion are Greeks, some as old as
 sixteen, and about the same number are Afrikaners. There are Poles and non-Nazi
 Germans, Swiss and a few American children.All instruction is through the medium of English and it is amazing how soon all the 
 foreign children learn to chatter in English. George has been told that we will return to
 Mbeya after our leave and for that I am very thankful as it means that we will still be living
 near at hand when Jim and Henry start school. Because many of these children have to
 travel many hundreds of miles to come to school, – Mbeya is a two day journey from the
 railhead, – the school year is divided into two instead of the usual three terms. This
 means that many of these children do not see their parents for months at a time. I think
 this is a very sad state of affairs especially for the seven and eight year olds but the
 Matrons assure me , that many children who live on isolated farms and stations are quite
 reluctant to go home because they miss the companionship and the games and
 entertainment that the school offers.My only complaint about the life here is that I see far too little of George. He is 
 kept extremely busy on this range and is hardly at home except for a few days at the
 months end when he has to be at his office to check up on the pay vouchers and the
 issue of ammunition to the Scouts. George’s Range takes in the whole of the Southern
 Province and the Southern half of the Western Province and extends to the border with
 Northern Rhodesia and right across to Lake Tanganyika. This vast area is patrolled by
 only 40 Game Scouts because the Department is at present badly under staffed, due
 partly to the still acute shortage of rifles, but even more so to the extraordinary reluctance
 which the Government shows to allocate adequate funds for the efficient running of the
 Department.The Game Scouts must see that the Game Laws are enforced, protect native 
 crops from raiding elephant, hippo and other game animals. Report disease amongst game and deal with stock raiding lions. By constantly going on safari and checking on
 their work, George makes sure the range is run to his satisfaction. Most of the Game
 Scouts are fine fellows but, considering they receive only meagre pay for dangerous
 and exacting work, it is not surprising that occasionally a Scout is tempted into accepting
 a bribe not to report a serious infringement of the Game Laws and there is, of course,
 always the temptation to sell ivory illicitly to unscrupulous Indian and Arab traders.
 Apart from supervising the running of the Range, George has two major jobs.
 One is to supervise the running of the Game Free Area along the Rhodesia –
 Tanganyika border, and the other to hunt down the man-eating lions which for years have
 terrorised the Njombe District killing hundreds of Africans. Yes I know ‘hundreds’ sounds
 fantastic, but this is perfectly true and one day, when the job is done and the official
 report published I shall send it to you to prove it!I hate to think of the Game Free Area and so does George. All the game from 
 buffalo to tiny duiker has been shot out in a wide belt extending nearly two hundred
 miles along the Northern Rhodesia -Tanganyika border. There are three Europeans in
 widely spaced camps who supervise this slaughter by African Game Guards. This
 horrible measure is considered necessary by the Veterinary Departments of
 Tanganyika, Rhodesia and South Africa, to prevent the cattle disease of Rinderpest
 from spreading South.When George is home however, we do relax and have fun. On the Saturday 
 before the school term started we took Kate and the boys up to the top fishing camp in
 the Mporoto Mountains for her first attempt at trout fishing. There are three of these
 camps built by the Mbeya Trout Association on the rivers which were first stocked with
 the trout hatched on our farm at Mchewe. Of the three, the top camp is our favourite. The
 scenery there is most glorious and reminds me strongly of the rivers of the Western
 Cape which I so loved in my childhood.The river, the Kawira, flows from the Rungwe Mountain through a narrow valley 
 with hills rising steeply on either side. The water runs swiftly over smooth stones and
 sometimes only a foot or two below the level of the banks. It is sparkling and shallow,
 but in places the water is deep and dark and the banks high. I had a busy day keeping
 an eye on the boys, especially Jim, who twice climbed out on branches which overhung
 deep water. “Mummy, I was only looking for trout!”How those kids enjoyed the freedom of the camp after the comparative 
 restrictions of town. So did Fanny, she raced about on the hills like a mad dog chasing
 imaginary rabbits and having the time of her life. To escape the noise and commotion
 George had gone far upstream to fish and returned in the late afternoon with three good
 sized trout and four smaller ones. Kate proudly showed George the two she had caught
 with the assistance or our cook Hamisi. I fear they were caught in a rather unorthodox
 manner but this I kept a secret from George who is a stickler for the orthodox in trout
 fishing.Eleanor. Jacksdale England 24th June 1946 Dearest Family. Here we are all together at last in England. You cannot imagine how wonderful it 
 feels to have the whole Rushby family reunited. I find myself counting heads. Ann,
 George, Kate, John, Jim, and Henry. All present and well. We had a very pleasant trip
 on the old British India Ship Mantola. She was crowded with East Africans going home
 for the first time since the war, many like us, eagerly looking forward to a reunion with their
 children whom they had not seen for years. There was a great air of anticipation and
 good humour but a little anxiety too.“I do hope our children will be glad to see us,” said one, and went on to tell me 
 about a Doctor from Dar es Salaam who, after years of separation from his son had
 recently gone to visit him at his school. The Doctor had alighted at the railway station
 where he had arranged to meet his son. A tall youth approached him and said, very
 politely, “Excuse me sir. Are you my Father?” Others told me of children who had
 become so attached to their relatives in England that they gave their parents a very cool
 reception. I began to feel apprehensive about Ann and George but fortunately had no
 time to mope.Oh, that washing and ironing for six! I shall remember for ever that steamy little 
 laundry in the heat of the Red Sea and queuing up for the ironing and the feeling of guilt
 at the size of my bundle. We met many old friends amongst the passengers, and made
 some new ones, so the voyage was a pleasant one, We did however have our
 anxious moments.John was the first to disappear and we had an anxious search for him. He was 
 quite surprised that we had been concerned. “I was just talking to my friend Chinky
 Chinaman in his workshop.” Could John have called him that? Then, when I returned to
 the cabin from dinner one night I found Henry swigging Owbridge’s Lung Tonic. He had
 drunk half the bottle neat and the label said ‘five drops in water’. Luckily it did not harm
 him.Jim of course was forever risking his neck. George had forbidden him to climb on 
 the railings but he was forever doing things which no one had thought of forbidding him
 to do, like hanging from the overhead pipes on the deck or standing on the sill of a
 window and looking down at the well deck far below. An Officer found him doing this and
 gave me the scolding.Another day he climbed up on a derrick used for hoisting cargo. George, 
 oblivious to this was sitting on the hatch cover with other passengers reading a book. I
 was in the wash house aft on the same deck when Kate rushed in and said, “Mummy
 come and see Jim.” Before I had time to more than gape, the butcher noticed Jim and
 rushed out knife in hand. “Get down from there”, he bellowed. Jim got, and with such
 speed that he caught the leg or his shorts on a projecting piece of metal. The cotton
 ripped across the seam from leg to leg and Jim stood there for a humiliating moment in a
 sort of revealing little kilt enduring the smiles of the passengers who had looked up from
 their books at the butcher’s shout.That incident cured Jim of his urge to climb on the ship but he managed to give 
 us one more fright. He was lost off Dover. People from whom we enquired said, “Yes
 we saw your little boy. He was by the railings watching that big aircraft carrier.” Now Jim,
 though mischievous , is very obedient. It was not until George and I had conducted an
 exhaustive search above and below decks that I really became anxious. Could he have
 fallen overboard? Jim was returned to us by an unamused Officer. He had been found
 in one of the lifeboats on the deck forbidden to children.Our ship passed Dover after dark and it was an unforgettable sight. Dover Castle 
 and the cliffs were floodlit for the Victory Celebrations. One of the men passengers sat
 down at the piano and played ‘The White Cliffs of Dover’, and people sang and a few
 wept. The Mantola docked at Tilbury early next morning in a steady drizzle.
 There was a dockers strike on and it took literally hours for all the luggage to be
 put ashore. The ships stewards simply locked the public rooms and went off leaving the
 passengers shivering on the docks. Eventually damp and bedraggled, we arrived at St
 Pancras Station and were given a warm welcome by George’s sister Cath and her
 husband Reg Pears, who had come all the way from Nottingham to meet us.
 As we had to spend an hour in London before our train left for Nottingham,
 George suggested that Cath and I should take the children somewhere for a meal. So
 off we set in the cold drizzle, the boys and I without coats and laden with sundry
 packages, including a hand woven native basket full of shoes. We must have looked like
 a bunch of refugees as we stood in the hall of The Kings Cross Station Hotel because a
 supercilious waiter in tails looked us up and down and said, “I’m afraid not Madam”, in
 answer to my enquiry whether the hotel could provide lunch for six.
 Anyway who cares! We had lunch instead at an ABC tea room — horrible
 sausage and a mound or rather sloppy mashed potatoes, but very good ice-cream.
 After the train journey in a very grimy third class coach, through an incredibly green and
 beautiful countryside, we eventually reached Nottingham and took a bus to Jacksdale,
 where George’s mother and sisters live in large detached houses side by side.
 Ann and George were at the bus stop waiting for us, and thank God, submitted
 to my kiss as though we had been parted for weeks instead of eight years. Even now
 that we are together again my heart aches to think of all those missed years. They have
 not changed much and I would have picked them out of a crowd, but Ann, once thin and
 pale, is now very rosy and blooming. She still has her pretty soft plaits and her eyes are
 still a clear calm blue. Young George is very striking looking with sparkling brown eyes, a
 ready, slightly lopsided smile, and charming manners.Mother, and George’s elder sister, Lottie Giles, welcomed us at the door with the 
 cheering news that our tea was ready. Ann showed us the way to mother’s lovely lilac
 tiled bathroom for a wash before tea. Before I had even turned the tap, Jim had hung
 form the glass towel rail and it lay in three pieces on the floor. There have since been
 similar tragedies. I can see that life in civilisation is not without snags.I am most grateful that Ann and George have accepted us so naturally and 
 affectionately. Ann said candidly, “Mummy, it’s a good thing that you had Aunt Cath with
 you when you arrived because, honestly, I wouldn’t have known you.”Eleanor. Jacksdale England 28th August 1946 Dearest Family. I am sorry that I have not written for some time but honestly, I don’t know whether 
 I’m coming or going. Mother handed the top floor of her house to us and the
 arrangement was that I should tidy our rooms and do our laundry and Mother would
 prepare the meals except for breakfast. It looked easy at first. All the rooms have wall to
 wall carpeting and there was a large vacuum cleaner in the box room. I was told a
 window cleaner would do the windows.Well the first time I used the Hoover I nearly died of fright. I pressed the switch 
 and immediately there was a roar and the bag filled with air to bursting point, or so I
 thought. I screamed for Ann and she came at the run. I pointed to the bag and shouted
 above the din, “What must I do? It’s going to burst!” Ann looked at me in astonishment
 and said, “But Mummy that’s the way it works.” I couldn’t have her thinking me a
 complete fool so I switched the current off and explained to Ann how it was that I had
 never seen this type of equipment in action. How, in Tanganyika , I had never had a
 house with electricity and that, anyway, electric equipment would be superfluous
 because floors are of cement which the houseboy polishes by hand, one only has a
 few rugs or grass mats on the floor. “But what about Granny’s house in South Africa?’”
 she asked, so I explained about your Josephine who threatened to leave if you
 bought a Hoover because that would mean that you did not think she kept the house
 clean. The sad fact remains that, at fourteen, Ann knows far more about housework than I
 do, or rather did! I’m learning fast.The older children all go to school at different times in the morning. Ann leaves first 
 by bus to go to her Grammar School at Sutton-in-Ashfield. Shortly afterwards George
 catches a bus for Nottingham where he attends the High School. So they have
 breakfast in relays, usually scrambled egg made from a revolting dried egg mixture.
 Then there are beds to make and washing and ironing to do, so I have little time for
 sightseeing, though on a few afternoons George has looked after the younger children
 and I have gone on bus tours in Derbyshire. Life is difficult here with all the restrictions on
 foodstuffs. We all have ration books so get our fair share but meat, fats and eggs are
 scarce and expensive. The weather is very wet. At first I used to hang out the washing
 and then rush to bring it in when a shower came. Now I just let it hang.We have left our imprint upon my Mother-in-law’s house for ever. Henry upset a 
 bottle of Milk of Magnesia in the middle of the pale fawn bedroom carpet. John, trying to
 be helpful and doing some dusting, broke one of the delicate Dresden china candlesticks
 which adorn our bedroom mantelpiece.Jim and Henry have wrecked the once
 professionally landscaped garden and all the boys together bored a large hole through
 Mother’s prized cherry tree. So now Mother has given up and gone off to Bournemouth
 for a much needed holiday. Once a week I have the capable help of a cleaning woman,
 called for some reason, ‘Mrs Two’, but I have now got all the cooking to do for eight. Mrs
 Two is a godsend. She wears, of all things, a print mob cap with a hole in it. Says it
 belonged to her Grandmother. Her price is far beyond Rubies to me, not so much
 because she does, in a couple of hours, what it takes me all day to do, but because she
 sells me boxes of fifty cigarettes. Some non-smoking relative, who works in Players
 tobacco factory, passes on his ration to her. Until Mrs Two came to my rescue I had
 been starved of cigarettes. Each time I asked for them at the shop the grocer would say,
 “Are you registered with us?” Only very rarely would some kindly soul sell me a little
 packet of five Woodbines.England is very beautiful but the sooner we go home to Tanganyika, the better. 
 On this, George and I and the children agree.Eleanor. Jacksdale England 20th September 1946 Dearest Family. Our return passages have now been booked on the Winchester Castle and we 
 sail from Southampton on October the sixth. I look forward to returning to Tanganyika but
 hope to visit England again in a few years time when our children are older and when
 rationing is a thing of the past.I have grown fond of my Sisters-in-law and admire my Mother-in-law very much. 
 She has a great sense of humour and has entertained me with stories of her very
 eventful life, and told me lots of little stories of the children which did not figure in her
 letters. One which amused me was about young George. During one of the air raids
 early in the war when the sirens were screaming and bombers roaring overhead Mother
 made the two children get into the cloak cupboard under the stairs. Young George
 seemed quite unconcerned about the planes and the bombs but soon an anxious voice
 asked in the dark, “Gran, what will I do if a spider falls on me?” I am afraid that Mother is
 going to miss Ann and George very much.I had a holiday last weekend when Lottie and I went up to London on a spree. It 
 was a most enjoyable weekend, though very rushed. We placed ourselves in the
 hands of Thos. Cook and Sons and saw most of the sights of London and were run off
 our feet in the process. As you all know London I shall not describe what I saw but just
 to say that, best of all, I enjoyed walking along the Thames embankment in the evening
 and the changing of the Guard at Whitehall. On Sunday morning Lottie and I went to
 Kew Gardens and in the afternoon walked in Kensington Gardens.We went to only one show, ‘The Skin of our Teeth’ starring Vivienne Leigh. 
 Neither of us enjoyed the performance at all and regretted having spent so much on
 circle seats. The show was far too highbrow for my taste, a sort of satire on the survival
 of the human race. Miss Leigh was unrecognisable in a blond wig and her voice strident.
 However the night was not a dead loss as far as entertainment was concerned as we
 were later caught up in a tragicomedy at our hotel.We had booked communicating rooms at the enormous Imperial Hotel in Russell 
 Square. These rooms were comfortably furnished but very high up, and we had a rather
 terrifying and dreary view from the windows of the enclosed courtyard far below. We
 had some snacks and a chat in Lottie’s room and then I moved to mine and went to bed.
 I had noted earlier that there was a special lock on the outer door of my room so that
 when the door was closed from the inside it automatically locked itself.
 I was just dropping off to sleep when I heard a hammering which seemed to
 come from my wardrobe. I got up, rather fearfully, and opened the wardrobe door and
 noted for the first time that the wardrobe was set in an opening in the wall and that the
 back of the wardrobe also served as the back of the wardrobe in the room next door. I
 quickly shut it again and went to confer with Lottie.Suddenly a male voice was raised next door in supplication, “Mary Mother of 
 God, Help me! They’ve locked me in!” and the hammering resumed again, sometimes
 on the door, and then again on the back of the wardrobe of the room next door. Lottie
 had by this time joined me and together we listened to the prayers and to the
 hammering. Then the voice began to threaten, “If you don’t let me out I’ll jump out of the
 window.” Great consternation on our side of the wall. I went out into the passage and
 called through the door, “You’re not locked in. Come to your door and I’ll tell you how to
 open it.” Silence for a moment and then again the prayers followed by a threat. All the
 other doors in the corridor remained shut.Luckily just then a young man and a woman came walking down the corridor and I 
 explained the situation. The young man hurried off for the night porter who went into the
 next door room. In a matter of minutes there was peace next door. When the night
 porter came out into the corridor again I asked for an explanation. He said quite casually,
 “It’s all right Madam. He’s an Irish Gentleman in Show Business. He gets like this on a
 Saturday night when he has had a drop too much. He won’t give any more trouble
 now.” And he didn’t. Next morning at breakfast Lottie and I tried to spot the gentleman in
 the Show Business, but saw no one who looked like the owner of that charming Irish
 voice.George had to go to London on business last Monday and took the older 
 children with him for a few hours of sight seeing. They returned quite unimpressed.
 Everything was too old and dirty and there were far too many people about, but they
 had enjoyed riding on the escalators at the tube stations, and all agreed that the highlight
 of the trip was, “Dad took us to lunch at the Chicken Inn.”Now that it is almost time to leave England I am finding the housework less of a 
 drudgery, Also, as it is school holiday time, Jim and Henry are able to go on walks with
 the older children and so use up some of their surplus energy. Cath and I took the
 children (except young George who went rabbit shooting with his uncle Reg, and
 Henry, who stayed at home with his dad) to the Wakes at Selston, the neighbouring
 village. There were the roundabouts and similar contraptions but the side shows had
 more appeal for the children. Ann and Kate found a stall where assorted prizes were
 spread out on a sloping table. Anyone who could land a penny squarely on one of
 these objects was given a similar one as a prize.I was touched to see that both girls ignored all the targets except a box of fifty 
 cigarettes which they were determined to win for me. After numerous attempts, Kate
 landed her penny successfully and you would have loved to have seen her radiant little
 face.Eleanor. Dar es Salaam 22nd October 1946 Dearest Family. Back in Tanganyika at last, but not together. We have to stay in Dar es Salaam 
 until tomorrow when the train leaves for Dodoma. We arrived yesterday morning to find
 all the hotels filled with people waiting to board ships for England. Fortunately some
 friends came to the rescue and Ann, Kate and John have gone to stay with them. Jim,
 Henry and I are sleeping in a screened corner of the lounge of the New Africa Hotel, and
 George and young George have beds in the Palm Court of the same hotel.We travelled out from England in the Winchester Castle under troopship 
 conditions. We joined her at Southampton after a rather slow train journey from
 Nottingham. We arrived after dark and from the station we could see a large ship in the
 docks with a floodlit red funnel. “Our ship,” yelled the children in delight, but it was not the
 Winchester Castle but the Queen Elizabeth, newly reconditioned.We had hoped to board our ship that evening but George made enquiries and 
 found that we would not be allowed on board until noon next day. Without much hope,
 we went off to try to get accommodation for eight at a small hotel recommended by the
 taxi driver. Luckily for us there was a very motherly woman at the reception desk. She
 looked in amusement at the six children and said to me, “Goodness are all these yours,
 ducks? Then she called over her shoulder, “Wilf, come and see this lady with lots of
 children. We must try to help.” They settled the problem most satisfactorily by turning
 two rooms into a dormitory.In the morning we had time to inspect bomb damage in the dock area of 
 Southampton. Most of the rubble had been cleared away but there are still numbers of
 damaged buildings awaiting demolition. A depressing sight. We saw the Queen Mary
 at anchor, still in her drab war time paint, but magnificent nevertheless.
 The Winchester Castle was crammed with passengers and many travelled in
 acute discomfort. We were luckier than most because the two girls, the three small boys
 and I had a stateroom to ourselves and though it was stripped of peacetime comforts,
 we had a private bathroom and toilet. The two Georges had bunks in a huge men-only
 dormitory somewhere in the bowls of the ship where they had to share communal troop
 ship facilities. The food was plentiful but unexciting and one had to queue for afternoon
 tea. During the day the decks were crowded and there was squatting room only. The
 many children on board got bored.Port Said provided a break and we were all entertained by the ‘Gully Gully’ man 
 and his conjuring tricks, and though we had no money to spend at Simon Artz, we did at
 least have a chance to stretch our legs. Next day scores of passengers took ill with
 sever stomach upsets, whether from food poisoning, or as was rumoured, from bad
 water taken on at the Egyptian port, I don’t know. Only the two Georges in our family
 were affected and their attacks were comparatively mild.As we neared the Kenya port of Mombassa, the passengers for Dar es Salaam 
 were told that they would have to disembark at Mombassa and continue their journey in
 a small coaster, the Al Said. The Winchester Castle is too big for the narrow channel
 which leads to Dar es Salaam harbour.From the wharf the Al Said looked beautiful. She was once the private yacht of 
 the Sultan of Zanzibar and has lovely lines. Our admiration lasted only until we were
 shown our cabins. With one voice our children exclaimed, “Gosh they stink!” They did, of
 a mixture of rancid oil and sweat and stale urine. The beds were not yet made and the
 thin mattresses had ominous stains on them. John, ever fastidious, lifted his mattress and two enormous cockroaches scuttled for cover.We had a good homely lunch served by two smiling African stewards and 
 afterwards we sat on deck and that was fine too, though behind ones enjoyment there
 was the thought of those stuffy and dirty cabins. That first night nearly everyone,
 including George and our older children, slept on deck. Women occupied deck chairs
 and men and children slept on the bare decks. Horrifying though the idea was, I decided
 that, as Jim had a bad cough, he, Henry and I would sleep in our cabin.When I announced my intention of sleeping in the cabin one of the passengers 
 gave me some insecticide spray which I used lavishly, but without avail. The children
 slept but I sat up all night with the light on, determined to keep at least their pillows clear
 of the cockroaches which scurried about boldly regardless of the light. All the next day
 and night we avoided the cabins. The Al Said stopped for some hours at Zanzibar to
 offload her deck cargo of live cattle and packing cases from the hold. George and the
 elder children went ashore for a walk but I felt too lazy and there was plenty to watch
 from deck.That night I too occupied a deck chair and slept quite comfortably, and next 
 morning we entered the palm fringed harbour of Dar es Salaam and were home.Eleanor. Mbeya 1st November 1946 Dearest Family. Home at last! We are all most happily installed in a real family house about three 
 miles out of Mbeya and near the school. This house belongs to an elderly German and
 has been taken over by the Custodian of Enemy Property and leased to the
 Government.The owner, whose name is Shenkel, was not interned but is allowed to occupy a 
 smaller house on the Estate. I found him in the garden this morning lecturing the children
 on what they may do and may not do. I tried to make it quite clear to him that he was not
 our landlord, though he clearly thinks otherwise. After he had gone I had to take two
 aspirin and lie down to recover my composure! I had been warned that he has this effect
 on people.Mr Shenkel is a short and ugly man, his clothes are stained with food and he 
 wears steel rimmed glasses tied round his head with a piece of dirty elastic because
 one earpiece is missing. He speaks with a thick German accent but his English is fluent
 and I believe he is a cultured and clever man. But he is maddening. The children were
 more amused than impressed by his exhortations and have happily Christened our
 home, ‘Old Shenks’.The house has very large grounds as the place is really a derelict farm. It suits us 
 down to the ground. We had no sooner unpacked than George went off on safari after
 those maneating lions in the Njombe District. he accounted for one, and a further two
 jointly with a Game Scout, before we left for England. But none was shot during the five
 months we were away as George’s relief is quite inexperienced in such work. George
 thinks that there are still about a dozen maneaters at large. His theory is that a female
 maneater moved into the area in 1938 when maneating first started, and brought up her
 cubs to be maneaters, and those cubs in turn did the same. The three maneating lions
 that have been shot were all in very good condition and not old and maimed as
 maneaters usually are.George anticipates that it will be months before all these lions are accounted for 
 because they are constantly on the move and cover a very large area. The lions have to
 be hunted on foot because they range over broken country covered by bush and fairly
 dense thicket.I did a bit of shooting myself yesterday and impressed our African servants and 
 the children and myself. What a fluke! Our houseboy came to say that there was a snake
 in the garden, the biggest he had ever seen. He said it was too big to kill with a stick and
 would I shoot it. I had no gun but a heavy .450 Webley revolver and I took this and
 hurried out with the children at my heels.The snake turned out to be an unusually large puff adder which had just shed its 
 skin. It looked beautiful in a repulsive way. So flanked by servants and children I took
 aim and shot, not hitting the head as I had planned, but breaking the snake’s back with
 the heavy bullet. The two native boys then rushed up with sticks and flattened the head.
 “Ma you’re a crack shot,” cried the kids in delighted surprise. I hope to rest on my laurels
 for a long, long while.Although there are only a few weeks of school term left the four older children will 
 start school on Monday. Not only am I pleased with our new home here but also with
 the staff I have engaged. Our new houseboy, Reuben, (but renamed Robin by our
 children) is not only cheerful and willing but intelligent too, and Jumbe, the wood and
 garden boy, is a born clown and a source of great entertainment to the children.I feel sure that we are all going to be very happy here at ‘Old Shenks!. Eleanor. February 2, 2022 at 12:50 pm #6267In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesFrom Tanganyika with Love continued part 8 With thanks to Mike Rushby. Morogoro 20th January 1941 Dearest Family, It is all arranged for us to go on three months leave to Cape Town next month so 
 get out your flags. How I shall love showing off Kate and John to you and this time
 George will be with us and you’ll be able to get to know him properly. You can’t think
 what a comfort it will be to leave all the worries of baggage and tipping to him. We will all
 be travelling by ship to Durban and from there to Cape Town by train. I rather dread the
 journey because there is a fifth little Rushby on the way and, as always, I am very
 queasy.Kate has become such a little companion to me that I dread the thought of leaving 
 her behind with you to start schooling. I miss Ann and George so much now and must
 face separation from Kate as well. There does not seem to be any alternative though.
 There is a boarding school in Arusha and another has recently been started in Mbeya,
 but both places are so far away and I know she would be very unhappy as a boarder at
 this stage. Living happily with you and attending a day school might wean her of her
 dependance upon me. As soon as this wretched war ends we mean to get Ann and
 George back home and Kate too and they can then all go to boarding school together.
 If I were a more methodical person I would try to teach Kate myself, but being a
 muddler I will have my hands full with Johnny and the new baby. Life passes pleasantly
 but quietly here. Much of my time is taken up with entertaining the children and sewing
 for them and just waiting for George to come home.George works so hard on these safaris and this endless elephant hunting to 
 protect native crops entails so much foot safari, that he has lost a good deal of weight. it
 is more than ten years since he had a holiday so he is greatly looking forward to this one.
 Four whole months together!I should like to keep the ayah, Janet, for the new baby, but she says she wants 
 to return to her home in the Southern Highlands Province and take a job there. She is
 unusually efficient and so clean, and the houseboy and cook are quite scared of her. She
 bawls at them if the children’s meals are served a few minutes late but she is always
 respectful towards me and practically creeps around on tiptoe when George is home.
 She has a room next to the outside kitchen. One night thieves broke into the kitchen and
 stole a few things, also a canvas chair and mat from the verandah. Ayah heard them, and
 grabbing a bit of firewood, she gave chase. Her shouts so alarmed the thieves that they
 ran off up the hill jettisoning their loot as they ran. She is a great character.Eleanor. Morogoro 30th July 1941 Dearest Family, Safely back in Morogoro after a rather grim voyage from Durban. Our ship was 
 completely blacked out at night and we had to sleep with warm clothing and life belts
 handy and had so many tedious boat drills. It was a nuisance being held up for a whole
 month in Durban, because I was so very pregnant when we did embark. In fact George
 suggested that I had better hide in the ‘Ladies’ until the ship sailed for fear the Captain
 might refuse to take me. It seems that the ship, on which we were originally booked to
 travel, was torpedoed somewhere off the Cape.We have been given a very large house this tour with a mosquito netted 
 sleeping porch which will be fine for the new baby. The only disadvantage is that the
 house is on the very edge of the residential part of Morogoro and Johnny will have to
 go quite a distance to find playmates.I still miss Kate terribly. She is a loving little person. I had prepared for a scene 
 when we said good-bye but I never expected that she would be the comforter. It
 nearly broke my heart when she put her arms around me and said, “I’m so sorry
 Mummy, please don’t cry. I’ll be good. Please don’t cry.” I’m afraid it was all very
 harrowing for you also. It is a great comfort to hear that she has settled down so happily.
 I try not to think consciously of my absent children and remind myself that there are
 thousands of mothers in the same boat, but they are always there at the back of my
 mind.Mother writes that Ann and George are perfectly happy and well, and that though 
 German bombers do fly over fairly frequently, they are unlikely to drop their bombs on
 a small place like Jacksdale.George has already left on safari to the Rufiji. There was no replacement for his 
 job while he was away so he is anxious to get things moving again. Johnny and I are
 going to move in with friends until he returns, just in case all the travelling around brings
 the new baby on earlier than expected.Eleanor. Morogoro 26th August 1941 Dearest Family, Our new son, James Caleb. was born at 3.30 pm yesterday afternoon, with a 
 minimum of fuss, in the hospital here. The Doctor was out so my friend, Sister Murray,
 delivered the baby. The Sister is a Scots girl, very efficient and calm and encouraging,
 and an ideal person to have around at such a time.Everything, this time, went without a hitch and I feel fine and proud of my 
 bouncing son. He weighs nine pounds and ten ounces and is a big boned fellow with
 dark hair and unusually strongly marked eyebrows. His eyes are strong too and already
 seem to focus. George is delighted with him and brought Hugh Nelson to see him this
 morning. Hugh took one look, and, astonished I suppose by the baby’s apparent
 awareness, said, “Gosh, this one has been here before.” The baby’s cot is beside my
 bed so I can admire him as much as I please. He has large strong hands and George
 reckons he’ll make a good boxer some day.Another of my early visitors was Mabemba, George’s orderly. He is a very big 
 African and looks impressive in his Game Scouts uniform. George met him years ago at
 Mahenge when he was a young elephant hunter and Mabemba was an Askari in the
 Police. Mabemba takes quite a proprietary interest in the family.Eleanor. Morogoro 25th December 1941 Dearest Family, Christmas Day today, but not a gay one. I have Johnny in bed with a poisoned 
 leg so he missed the children’s party at the Club. To make things a little festive I have
 put up a little Christmas tree in the children’s room and have hung up streamers and
 balloons above the beds. Johnny demands a lot of attention so it is fortunate that little
 James is such a very good baby. He sleeps all night until 6 am when his feed is due.
 One morning last week I got up as usual to feed him but I felt so dopey that I
 thought I’d better have a cold wash first. I went into the bathroom and had a hurried
 splash and then grabbed a towel to dry my face. Immediately I felt an agonising pain in
 my nose. Reason? There was a scorpion in the towel! In no time at all my nose looked
 like a pear and felt burning hot. The baby screamed with frustration whilst I feverishly
 bathed my nose and applied this and that in an effort to cool it.For three days my nose was very red and tender,”A real boozer nose”, said 
 George. But now, thank goodness, it is back to normal.Some of the younger marrieds and a couple of bachelors came around, 
 complete with portable harmonium, to sing carols in the early hours. No sooner had we
 settled down again to woo sleep when we were disturbed by shouts and screams from
 our nearest neighbour’s house. “Just celebrating Christmas”, grunted George, but we
 heard this morning that the neighbour had fallen down his verandah steps and broken his
 leg.Eleanor. Morogoro Hospital 30th September 1943 Dearest Family, Well now we are eight! Our new son, Henry, was born on the night of the 28th. 
 He is a beautiful baby, weighing ten pounds three and a half ounces. This baby is very
 well developed, handsome, and rather superior looking, and not at all amusing to look at
 as the other boys were.George was born with a moustache, John had a large nose and
 looked like a little old man, and Jim, bless his heart, looked rather like a baby
 chimpanzee. Henry is different. One of my visitors said, “Heaven he’ll have to be a
 Bishop!” I expect the lawn sleeves of his nightie really gave her that idea, but the baby
 does look like ‘Someone’. He is very good and George, John, and Jim are delighted
 with him, so is Mabemba.We have a dear little nurse looking after us. She is very petite and childish 
 looking. When the baby was born and she brought him for me to see, the nurse asked
 his name. I said jokingly, “His name is Benjamin – the last of the family.” She is now very
 peeved to discover that his real name is Henry William and persists in calling him
 ‘Benjie’.I am longing to get home and into my pleasant rut. I have been away for two
 whole weeks and George is managing so well that I shall feel quite expendable if I don’t
 get home soon. As our home is a couple of miles from the hospital, I arranged to move
 in and stay with the nursing sister on the day the baby was due. There I remained for ten
 whole days before the baby was born. Each afternoon George came and took me for a
 ride in the bumpy Bedford lorry and the Doctor tried this and that but the baby refused
 to be hurried.On the tenth day I had the offer of a lift and decided to go home for tea and 
 surprise George. It was a surprise too, because George was entertaining a young
 Game Ranger for tea and my arrival, looking like a perambulating big top, must have
 been rather embarrassing.Henry was born at the exact moment that celebrations started
 in the Township for the end of the Muslim religious festival of Ramadan. As the Doctor
 held him up by his ankles, there was the sound of hooters and firecrackers from the town.
 The baby has a birthmark in the shape of a crescent moon above his left eyebrow.Eleanor. Morogoro 26th January 1944 Dearest Family, We have just heard that we are to be transferred to the Headquarters of the 
 Game Department at a place called Lyamungu in the Northern Province. George is not
 at all pleased because he feels that the new job will entail a good deal of office work and
 that his beloved but endless elephant hunting will be considerably curtailed. I am glad of
 that and I am looking forward to seeing a new part of Tanganyika and particularly
 Kilimanjaro which dominates Lyamungu.Thank goodness our menagerie is now much smaller. We found a home for the 
 guinea pigs last December and Susie, our mischievous guinea-fowl, has flown off to find
 a mate.Last week I went down to Dar es Salaam for a check up by Doctor John, a
 woman doctor, leaving George to cope with the three boys. I was away two nights and
 a day and returned early in the morning just as George was giving Henry his six o’clock
 bottle. It always amazes me that so very masculine a man can do my chores with no
 effort and I have a horrible suspicion that he does them better than I do. I enjoyed the
 short break at the coast very much. I stayed with friends and we bathed in the warm sea
 and saw a good film.Now I suppose there will be a round of farewell parties. People in this country 
 are most kind and hospitable.Eleanor. Lyamungu 20th March 1944 Dearest Family, We left Morogoro after the round of farewell parties I had anticipated. The final 
 one was at the Club on Saturday night. George made a most amusing speech and the
 party was a very pleasant occasion though I was rather tired after all the packing.
 Several friends gathered to wave us off on Monday morning. We had two lorries
 loaded with our goods. I rode in the cab of the first one with Henry on my knee. George
 with John and Jim rode in the second one. As there was no room for them in the cab,
 they sat on our couch which was placed across the width of the lorry behind the cab. This
 seat was not as comfortable as it sounds, because the space behind the couch was
 taken up with packing cases which were not lashed in place and these kept moving
 forward as the lorry bumped its way over the bad road.Soon there was hardly any leg room and George had constantly to stand up and 
 push the second layer of packing cases back to prevent them from toppling over onto
 the children and himself. As it is now the rainy season the road was very muddy and
 treacherous and the lorries travelled so slowly it was dark by the time we reached
 Karogwe from where we were booked to take the train next morning to Moshi.
 Next morning we heard that there had been a washaway on the line and that the
 train would be delayed for at least twelve hours. I was not feeling well and certainly did
 not enjoy my day. Early in the afternoon Jimmy ran into a wall and blackened both his
 eyes. What a child! As the day wore on I felt worse and worse and when at last the train
 did arrive I simply crawled into my bunk whilst George coped nobly with the luggage
 and the children.We arrived at Moshi at breakfast time and went straight to the Lion Cub Hotel 
 where I took to my bed with a high temperature. It was, of course, malaria. I always have
 my attacks at the most inopportune times. Fortunately George ran into some friends
 called Eccles and the wife Mollie came to my room and bathed Henry and prepared his
 bottle and fed him. George looked after John and Jim. Next day I felt much better and
 we drove out to Lyamungu the day after. There we had tea with the Game Warden and
 his wife before moving into our new home nearby.The Game Warden is Captain Monty Moore VC. He came out to Africa 
 originally as an Officer in the King’s African Rifles and liked the country so much he left the
 Army and joined the Game Department. He was stationed at Banagi in the Serengetti
 Game Reserve and is well known for his work with the lions there. He particularly tamed
 some of the lions by feeding them so that they would come out into the open and could
 readily be photographed by tourists. His wife Audrey, has written a book about their
 experiences at Banagi. It is called “Serengetti”Our cook, Hamisi, soon had a meal ready for us and we all went to bed early. 
 This is a very pleasant house and I know we will be happy here. I still feel a little shaky
 but that is the result of all the quinine I have taken. I expect I shall feel fine in a day or two.Eleanor. Lyamungu 15th May 1944 Dearest Family, Well, here we are settled comfortably in our very nice house. The house is 
 modern and roomy, and there is a large enclosed verandah, which will be a Godsend in
 the wet weather as a playroom for the children. The only drawback is that there are so
 many windows to be curtained and cleaned. The grounds consist of a very large lawn
 and a few beds of roses and shrubs. It is an ideal garden for children, unlike our steeply
 terraced garden at Morogoro.Lyamungu is really the Government Coffee Research Station. It is about sixteen 
 miles from the town of Moshi which is the centre of the Tanganyika coffee growing
 industry. Lyamungu, which means ‘place of God’ is in the foothills of Mt Kilimanjaro and
 we have a beautiful view of Kilimanjaro. Kibo, the more spectacular of the two mountain
 peaks, towers above us, looking from this angle, like a giant frosted plum pudding. Often the mountain is veiled by cloud and mist which sometimes comes down to
 our level so that visibility is practically nil. George dislikes both mist and mountain but I
 like both and so does John. He in fact saw Kibo before I did. On our first day here, the
 peak was completely hidden by cloud. In the late afternoon when the children were
 playing on the lawn outside I was indoors hanging curtains. I heard John call out, “Oh
 Mummy, isn’t it beautiful!” I ran outside and there, above a scarf of cloud, I saw the
 showy dome of Kibo with the setting sun shining on it tingeing the snow pink. It was an
 unforgettable experience.As this is the rainy season, the surrounding country side is very lush and green. 
 Everywhere one sees the rich green of the coffee plantations and the lighter green of
 the banana groves. Unfortunately our walks are rather circumscribed. Except for the main road to Moshi, there is nowhere to walk except through the Government coffee
 plantation. Paddy, our dog, thinks life is pretty boring as there is no bush here and
 nothing to hunt. There are only half a dozen European families here and half of those are
 on very distant terms with the other half which makes the station a rather uncomfortable
 one.The coffee expert who runs this station is annoyed because his European staff 
 has been cut down owing to the war, and three of the vacant houses and some office
 buildings have been taken over temporarily by the Game Department. Another house
 has been taken over by the head of the Labour Department. However I don’t suppose
 the ill feeling will effect us much. We are so used to living in the bush that we are not
 socially inclined any way.Our cook, Hamisi, came with us from Morogoro but I had to engage a new 
 houseboy and kitchenboy. I first engaged a houseboy who produced a wonderful ‘chit’
 in which his previous employer describes him as his “friend and confidant”. I felt rather
 dubious about engaging him and how right I was. On his second day with us I produced
 some of Henry’s napkins, previously rinsed by me, and asked this boy to wash them.
 He looked most offended and told me that it was beneath his dignity to do women’s
 work. We parted immediately with mutual relief.Now I have a good natured fellow named Japhet who, though hard on crockery, 
 is prepared to do anything and loves playing with the children. He is a local boy, a
 member of the Chagga tribe. These Chagga are most intelligent and, on the whole, well
 to do as they all have their own small coffee shambas. Japhet tells me that his son is at
 the Uganda University College studying medicine.The kitchen boy is a tall youth called
 Tovelo, who helps both Hamisi, the cook, and the houseboy and also keeps an eye on
 Henry when I am sewing. I still make all the children’s clothes and my own. Life is
 pleasant but dull. George promises that he will take the whole family on safari when
 Henry is a little older.Eleanor. Lyamungu 18th July 1944 Dearest Family, Life drifts quietly by at Lyamungu with each day much like the one before – or 
 they would be, except that the children provide the sort of excitement that prohibits
 boredom. Of the three boys our Jim is the best at this. Last week Jim wandered into the
 coffee plantation beside our house and chewed some newly spayed berries. Result?
 A high temperature and nasty, bloody diarrhoea, so we had to rush him to the hospital at
 Moshi for treatment. however he was well again next day and George went off on safari.
 That night there was another crisis. As the nights are now very cold, at this high
 altitude, we have a large fire lit in the living room and the boy leaves a pile of logs
 beside the hearth so that I can replenish the fire when necessary. Well that night I took
 Henry off to bed, leaving John and Jim playing in the living room. When their bedtime
 came, I called them without leaving the bedroom. When I had tucked John and Jim into
 bed, I sat reading a bedtime story as I always do. Suddenly I saw smoke drifting
 through the door, and heard a frightening rumbling noise. Japhet rushed in to say that the
 lounge chimney was on fire! Picture me, panic on the inside and sweet smile on the
 outside, as I picked Henry up and said to the other two, “There’s nothing to be
 frightened about chaps, but get up and come outside for a bit.” Stupid of me to be so
 heroic because John and Jim were not at all scared but only too delighted at the chance
 of rushing about outside in the dark. The fire to them was just a bit of extra fun.We hurried out to find one boy already on the roof and the other passing up a 
 brimming bucket of water. Other boys appeared from nowhere and soon cascades of
 water were pouring down the chimney. The result was a mountain of smouldering soot
 on the hearth and a pool of black water on the living room floor. However the fire was out
 and no serious harm done because all the floors here are cement and another stain on
 the old rug will hardly be noticed. As the children reluctantly returned to bed John
 remarked smugly, “I told Jim not to put all the wood on the fire at once but he wouldn’t
 listen.” I might have guessed!However it was not Jim but John who gave me the worst turn of all this week. As 
 a treat I decided to take the boys to the river for a picnic tea. The river is not far from our
 house but we had never been there before so I took the kitchen boy, Tovelo, to show
 us the way. The path is on the level until one is in sight of the river when the bank slopes
 steeply down. I decided that it was too steep for the pram so I stopped to lift Henry out
 and carry him. When I looked around I saw John running down the slope towards the
 river. The stream is not wide but flows swiftly and I had no idea how deep it was. All I
 knew was that it was a trout stream. I called for John, “Stop, wait for me!” but he ran on
 and made for a rude pole bridge which spanned the river. He started to cross and then,
 to my horror, I saw John slip. There was a splash and he disappeared under the water. I
 just dumped the baby on the ground, screamed to the boy to mind him and ran madly
 down the slope to the river. Suddenly I saw John’s tight fitting felt hat emerge, then his
 eyes and nose. I dashed into the water and found, to my intense relief, that it only
 reached up to my shoulders but, thank heaven no further. John’s steady eyes watched
 me trustingly as I approached him and carried him safely to the bank. He had been
 standing on a rock and had not panicked at all though he had to stand up very straight
 and tall to keep his nose out of water. I was too proud of him to scold him for
 disobedience and too wet anyway.I made John undress and put on two spare pullovers and wrapped Henry’s 
 baby blanket round his waist like a sarong. We made a small fire over which I crouched
 with literally chattering teeth whilst Tovelo ran home to fetch a coat for me and dry clothes
 for John.Eleanor. Lyamungu 16th August 1944 Dearest Family, We have a new bull terrier bitch pup whom we have named Fanny III . So once 
 more we have a menagerie , the two dogs, two cats Susie and Winnie, and
 some pet hens who live in the garage and are a real nuisance.As John is nearly six I thought it time that he started lessons and wrote off to Dar 
 es Salaam for the correspondence course. We have had one week of lessons and I am
 already in a state of physical and mental exhaustion. John is a most reluctant scholar.
 “Why should I learn to read, when you can read to me?” he asks, and “Anyway why
 should I read such stupid stuff, ‘Run Rover Run’, and ‘Mother play with baby’ . Who
 wants to read about things like that? I don’t.”He rather likes sums, but the only subject about which he is enthusiastic is 
 prehistoric history. He laps up information about ‘The Tree Dwellers’, though he is very
 sceptical about the existence of such people. “God couldn’t be so silly to make people
 so stupid. Fancy living in trees when it is easy to make huts like the natives.” ‘The Tree
 Dwellers is a highly imaginative story about a revolting female called Sharptooth and her
 offspring called Bodo. I have a very clear mental image of Sharptooth, so it came as a
 shock to me and highly amused George when John looked at me reflectively across the
 tea table and said, “Mummy I expect Sharptooth looked like you. You have a sharp
 tooth too!” I have, my eye teeth are rather sharp, but I hope the resemblance stops
 there.John has an uncomfortably logical mind for a small boy. The other day he was 
 lying on the lawn staring up at the clouds when he suddenly muttered “I don’t believe it.”
 “Believe what?” I asked. “That Jesus is coming on a cloud one day. How can he? The
 thick ones always stay high up. What’s he going to do, jump down with a parachute?”
 Tovelo, my kitchen boy, announced one evening that his grandmother was in the
 kitchen and wished to see me. She was a handsome and sensible Chagga woman who
 brought sad news. Her little granddaughter had stumbled backwards into a large cooking
 pot of almost boiling maize meal porridge and was ‘ngongwa sana’ (very ill). I grabbed
 a large bottle of Picric Acid and a packet of gauze which we keep for these emergencies
 and went with her, through coffee shambas and banana groves to her daughter’s house.
 Inside the very neat thatched hut the mother sat with the naked child lying face
 downwards on her knee. The child’s buttocks and the back of her legs were covered in
 huge burst blisters from which a watery pus dripped. It appeared that the accident had
 happened on the previous day.I could see that it was absolutely necessary to clean up the damaged area, and I 
 suddenly remembered that there was a trained African hospital dresser on the station. I
 sent the father to fetch him and whilst the dresser cleaned off the sloughed skin with
 forceps and swabs saturated in Picric Acid, I cut the gauze into small squares which I
 soaked in the lotion and laid on the cleaned area. I thought the small pieces would be
 easier to change especially as the whole of the most tender parts, front and back, were
 badly scalded. The child seemed dazed and neither the dresser nor I thought she would
 live. I gave her half an aspirin and left three more half tablets to be given four hourly.
 Next day she seemed much brighter. I poured more lotion on the gauze
 disturbing as few pieces as possible and again the next day and the next. After a week
 the skin was healing well and the child eating normally. I am sure she will be all right now.
 The new skin is a brilliant red and very shiny but it is pale round the edges of the burnt
 area and will I hope later turn brown. The mother never uttered a word of thanks, but the
 granny is grateful and today brought the children a bunch of bananas.Eleanor. c/o Game Dept. P.O.Moshi. 29th September 1944 Dearest Mummy, I am so glad that you so enjoyed my last letter with the description of our very 
 interesting and enjoyable safari through Masailand. You said you would like an even
 fuller description of it to pass around amongst the relations, so, to please you, I have
 written it out in detail and enclose the result.We have spent a quiet week after our exertions and all are well here. Very much love, 
 Eleanor.Safari in Masailand George and I were at tea with our three little boys on the front lawn of our house 
 in Lyamungu, Northern Tanganyika. It was John’s sixth birthday and he and Jim, a
 happy sturdy three year old, and Henry, aged eleven months, were munching the
 squares of plain chocolate which rounded off the party, when George said casually
 across the table to me, “Could you be ready by the day after tomorrow to go on
 safari?” “Me too?” enquired John anxiously, before I had time to reply, and “Me too?”
 echoed Jim. “yes, of course I can”, said I to George and “of course you’re coming too”,
 to the children who rate a day spent in the bush higher than any other pleasure.
 So in the early morning two days later, we started out happily for Masailand in a
 three ton Ford lorry loaded to capacity with the five Rushbys, the safari paraphernalia,
 drums of petrol and quite a retinue of servants and Game Scouts. George travelling
 alone on his monthly safaris, takes only the cook and a couple of Game Scouts, but this was to be a safari de luxe.Henry and I shared the cab with George who was driving, whilst John and Jim 
 with the faithful orderly Mabemba beside them to point out the game animals, were
 installed upon rolls of bedding in the body of the lorry. The lorry lumbered along, first
 through coffee shambas, and then along the main road between Moshi and Arusha.
 After half an hour or so, we turned South off the road into a track which crossed the
 Sanya Plains and is the beginning of this part of Masailand. Though the dry season was
 at its height, and the pasture dry and course, we were soon passing small groups of
 game. This area is a Game Sanctuary and the antelope grazed quietly quite undisturbed
 by the passing lorry. Here and there zebra stood bunched by the road, a few wild
 ostriches stalked jerkily by, and in the distance some wildebeest cavorted around in their
 crazy way.Soon the grasslands gave way to thorn bush, and we saw six fantastically tall 
 giraffe standing motionless with their heads turned enquiringly towards us. George
 stopped the lorry so the children could have a good view of them. John was enchanted
 but Jim, alas, was asleep.At mid day we reached the Kikoletwa River and turned aside to camp. Beside 
 the river, under huge leafy trees, there was a beautiful camping spot, but the river was
 deep and reputed to be full of crocodiles so we passed it by and made our camp
 some distance from the river under a tall thorn tree with a flat lacy canopy. All around the
 camp lay uprooted trees of similar size that had been pushed over by elephants. As
 soon as the lorry stopped a camp chair was set up for me and the Game Scouts quickly
 slashed down grass and cleared the camp site of thorns. The same boys then pitched the tent whilst George himself set up the three camp beds and the folding cot for Henry,
 and set up the safari table and the canvas wash bowl and bath.The cook in the meantime had cleared a cool spot for the kitchen , opened up the 
 chop boxes and started a fire. The cook’s boy and the dhobi (laundry boy) brought
 water from the rather muddy river and tea was served followed shortly afterward by an
 excellent lunch. In a very short time the camp had a suprisingly homely look. Nappies
 fluttered from a clothes line, Henry slept peacefully in his cot, John and Jim sprawled on
 one bed looking at comics, and I dozed comfortably on another.George, with the Game Scouts, drove off in the lorry about his work. As a Game 
 Ranger it is his business to be on a constant look out for poachers, both African and
 European, and for disease in game which might infect the valuable herds of Masai cattle.
 The lorry did not return until dusk by which time the children had bathed enthusiastically in
 the canvas bath and were ready for supper and bed. George backed the lorry at right
 angles to the tent, Henry’s cot and two camp beds were set up in the lorry, the tarpaulin
 was lashed down and the children put to bed in their novel nursery.When darkness fell a large fire was lit in front of the camp, the exited children at 
 last fell asleep and George and I sat on by the fire enjoying the cool and quiet night.
 When the fire subsided into a bed of glowing coals, it was time for our bed. During the
 night I was awakened by the sound of breaking branches and strange indescribable
 noises.” Just elephant”, said George comfortably and instantly fell asleep once more. I
 didn’t! We rose with the birds next morning, but breakfast was ready and in a
 remarkably short time the lorry had been reloaded and we were once more on our way.
 For about half a mile we made our own track across the plain and then we turned
 into the earth road once more. Soon we had reached the river and were looking with
 dismay at the suspension bridge which we had to cross. At the far side, one steel
 hawser was missing and there the bridge tilted dangerously. There was no handrail but
 only heavy wooden posts which marked the extremities of the bridge. WhenGeorge
 measured the distance between the posts he found that there could be barely two
 inches to spare on either side of the cumbersome lorry.He decided to risk crossing, but the children and I and all the servants were told to 
 cross the bridge and go down the track out of sight. The Game Scouts remained on the
 river bank on the far side of the bridge and stood ready for emergencies. As I walked
 along anxiously listening, I was horrified to hear the lorry come to a stop on the bridge.
 There was a loud creaking noise and I instantly visualised the lorry slowly toppling over
 into the deep crocodile infested river. The engine restarted, the lorry crossed the bridge
 and came slowly into sight around the bend. My heart slid back into its normal position.
 George was as imperturbable as ever and simply remarked that it had been a near
 thing and that we would return to Lyamungu by another route.Beyond the green river belt the very rutted track ran through very uninteresting 
 thorn bush country. Henry was bored and tiresome, jumping up and down on my knee
 and yelling furiously. “Teeth”, said I apologetically to George, rashly handing a match
 box to Henry to keep him quiet. No use at all! With a fat finger he poked out the tray
 spilling the matches all over me and the floor. Within seconds Henry had torn the
 matchbox to pieces with his teeth and flung the battered remains through the window.
 An empty cigarette box met with the same fate as the match box and the yells
 continued unabated until Henry slept from sheer exhaustion. George gave me a smile,
 half sympathetic and half sardonic, “Enjoying the safari, my love?” he enquired. On these
 trying occasions George has the inestimable advantage of being able to go into a Yogilike
 trance, whereas I become irritated to screaming point.In an effort to prolong Henry’s slumber I braced my feet against the floor boards 
 and tried to turn myself into a human shock absorber as we lurched along the eroded
 track. Several times my head made contact with the bolt of a rifle in the rack above, and
 once I felt I had shattered my knee cap against the fire extinguisher in a bracket under the
 dash board.Strange as it may seem, I really was enjoying the trip in spite of these 
 discomforts. At last after three years I was once more on safari with George. This type of
 country was new to me and there was so much to see We passed a family of giraffe
 standing in complete immobility only a few yards from the track. Little dick-dick. one of the smallest of the antelope, scuttled in pairs across the road and that afternoon I had my first view of Gerenuk, curious red brown antelope with extremely elongated legs and giraffe-like necks.Most interesting of all was my first sight of Masai at home. We could hear a tuneful 
 jangle of cattle bells and suddenly came across herds of humped cattle browsing upon
 the thorn bushes. The herds were guarded by athletic,striking looking Masai youths and men.
 Each had a calabash of water slung over his shoulder and a tall, highly polished spear in his
 hand. These herdsmen were quite unselfconscious though they wore no clothing except for one carelessly draped blanket. Very few gave us any greeting but glanced indifferently at us from under fringes of clay-daubed plaited hair . The rest of their hair was drawn back behind the ears to display split earlobes stretched into slender loops by the weight of heavy brass or copper tribal ear rings.Most of the villages were set well back in the bush out of sight of the road but we did pass one 
 typical village which looked most primitive indeed. It consisted simply of a few mound like mud huts which were entirely covered with a plaster of mud and cattle dung and the whole clutch of huts were surrounded by a ‘boma’ of thorn to keep the cattle in at night and the lions out. There was a gathering of women and children on the road at this point. The children of both sexes were naked and unadorned, but the women looked very fine indeed. This is not surprising for they have little to do but adorn themselves, unlike their counterparts of other tribes who have to work hard cultivating the fields. The Masai women, and others I saw on safari, were far more amiable and cheerful looking than the men and were well proportioned.They wore skirts of dressed goat skin, knee length in front but ankle length behind. Their arms 
 from elbow to wrist, and legs from knee to ankle, were encased in tight coils of copper and
 galvanised wire. All had their heads shaved and in some cases bound by a leather band
 embroidered in red white and blue beads. Circular ear rings hung from slit earlobes and their
 handsome throats were encircled by stiff wire necklaces strung with brightly coloured beads. These
 necklaces were carefully graded in size and formed deep collars almost covering their breasts.
 About a quarter of a mile further along the road we met eleven young braves in gala attire, obviously on their way to call on the girls. They formed a line across the road and danced up and down until the lorry was dangerously near when they parted and grinned cheerfully at us. These were the only cheerful
 looking male Masai that I saw. Like the herdsmen these youths wore only a blanket, but their
 blankets were ochre colour, and elegantly draped over their backs. Their naked bodies gleamed with oil. Several had painted white stripes on their faces, and two had whitewashed their faces entirely which I
 thought a pity. All had their long hair elaborately dressed and some carried not only one,
 but two gleaming spears.By mid day George decided that we had driven far enough for that day. He 
 stopped the lorry and consulted a rather unreliable map. “Somewhere near here is a
 place called Lolbeni,” he said. “The name means Sweet Water, I hear that the
 government have piped spring water down from the mountain into a small dam at which
 the Masai water their cattle.” Lolbeni sounded pleasant to me. Henry was dusty and
 cross, the rubber sheet had long slipped from my lap to the floor and I was conscious of
 a very damp lap. ‘Sweet Waters’ I felt, would put all that right. A few hundred yards
 away a small herd of cattle was grazing, so George lit his pipe and relaxed at last, whilst
 a Game Scout went off to find the herdsman. The scout soon returned with an ancient
 and emaciated Masai who was thrilled at the prospect of his first ride in a lorry and
 offered to direct us to Lolbeni which was off the main track and about four miles away.Once Lolbeni had been a small administrative post and a good track had 
 led to it, but now the Post had been abandoned and the road is dotted with vigourous
 thorn bushes and the branches of larger thorn trees encroach on the track The road had
 deteriorated to a mere cattle track, deeply rutted and eroded by heavy rains over a
 period of years. The great Ford truck, however, could take it. It lurched victoriously along,
 mowing down the obstructions, tearing off branches from encroaching thorn trees with its
 high railed sides, spanning gorges in the track, and climbing in and out of those too wide
 to span. I felt an army tank could not have done better.I had expected Lolbeni to be a green oasis in a desert of grey thorns, but I was 
 quickly disillusioned. To be sure the thorn trees were larger and more widely spaced and
 provided welcome shade, but the ground under the trees had been trampled by thousands of cattle into a dreary expanse of dirty grey sand liberally dotted with cattle droppings and made still more uninviting by the bleached bones of dead beasts.To the right of this waste rose a high green hill which gave the place its name and from which 
 the precious water was piped, but its slopes were too steep to provide a camping site.
 Flies swarmed everywhere and I was most relieved when George said that we would
 stay only long enough to fill our cans with water. Even the water was a disappointment!
 The water in the small dam was low and covered by a revolting green scum, and though
 the water in the feeding pipe was sweet, it trickled so feebly that it took simply ages to
 fill a four gallon can.However all these disappointments were soon forgotten for we drove away 
 from the flies and dirt and trampled sand and soon, with their quiet efficiency, George
 and his men set up a comfortable camp. John and Jim immediately started digging
 operations in the sandy soil whilst Henry and I rested. After tea George took his shot
 gun and went off to shoot guinea fowl and partridges for the pot. The children and I went
 walking, keeping well in site of camp, and soon we saw a very large flock of Vulturine
 Guineafowl, running aimlessly about and looking as tame as barnyard fowls, but melting
 away as soon as we moved in their direction.We had our second quiet and lovely evening by the camp fire, followed by a 
 peaceful night.We left Lolbeni very early next morning, which was a good thing, for as we left 
 camp the herds of thirsty cattle moved in from all directions. They were accompanied by
 Masai herdsmen, their naked bodies and blankets now covered by volcanic dust which
 was being stirred in rising clouds of stifling ash by the milling cattle, and also by grey
 donkeys laden with panniers filled with corked calabashes for water.Our next stop was Nabarera, a Masai cattle market and trading centre, where we 
 reluctantly stayed for two days in a pokey Goverment Resthouse because George had
 a job to do in that area. The rest was good for Henry who promptly produced a tooth
 and was consequently much better behaved for the rest of the trip. George was away in the bush most of the day but he returned for afternoon tea and later took the children out
 walking. We had noticed curious white dumps about a quarter mile from the resthouse
 and on the second afternoon we set out to investigate them. Behind the dumps we
 found passages about six foot wide, cut through solid limestone. We explored two of
 these and found that both passages led steeply down to circular wells about two and a
 half feet in diameter.At the very foot of each passage, beside each well, rough drinking troughs had 
 been cut in the stone. The herdsmen haul the water out of the well in home made hide
 buckets, the troughs are filled and the cattle driven down the ramps to drink at the trough.
 It was obvious that the wells were ancient and the sloping passages new. George tells
 me that no one knows what ancient race dug the original wells. It seems incredible that
 these deep and narrow shafts could have been sunk without machinery. I craned my
 neck and looked above one well and could see an immensely long shaft reaching up to
 ground level. Small footholds were cut in the solid rock as far as I could see.
 It seems that the Masai are as ignorant as ourselves about the origin of these
 wells. They do say however that when their forebears first occupied what is now known
 as Masailand, they not only found the Wanderobo tribe in the area but also a light
 skinned people and they think it possible that these light skinned people dug the wells.
 These people disappeared. They may have been absorbed or, more likely, they were
 liquidated.The Masai had found the well impractical in their original form and had hired 
 labourers from neighbouring tribes to cut the passages to water level. Certainly the Masai are not responsible for the wells. They are a purely pastoral people and consider manual labour extremely degrading.They live chiefly on milk from their herd which they allow to go sour, and mix with blood that has been skilfully tapped from the necks of living cattle. They do not eat game meat, nor do they cultivate any 
 land. They hunt with spears, but hunt only lions, to protect their herds, and to test the skill
 and bravery of their young warriors. What little grain they do eat is transported into
 Masailand by traders. The next stage of our journey took us to Ngassamet where
 George was to pick up some elephant tusks. I had looked forward particularly to this
 stretch of road for I had heard that there was a shallow lake at which game congregates,
 and at which I had great hopes of seeing elephants. We had come too late in the
 season though, the lake was dry and there were only piles of elephant droppings to
 prove that elephant had recently been there in numbers. Ngassamet, though no beauty
 spot, was interesting. We saw more elaborate editions of the wells already described, and as this area
 is rich in cattle we saw the aristocrats of the Masai. You cannot conceive of a more arrogant looking male than a young Masai brave striding by on sandalled feet, unselfconscious in all his glory. All the young men wore the casually draped traditional ochre blanket and carried one or more spears. But here belts and long knife sheaths of scarlet leather seem to be the fashion. Here fringes do not seem to be the thing. Most of these young Masai had their hair drawn smoothly back and twisted in a pointed queue, the whole plastered with a smooth coating of red clay. Some tied their horn shaped queues over their heads
 so that the tip formed a deep Satanic peak on the brow. All these young men wore the traditional
 copper earrings and I saw one or two with copper bracelets and one with a necklace of brightly coloured
 beads.It so happened that, on the day of our visit to Ngassamet, there had been a 
 baraza (meeting) which was attended by all the local headmen and elders. These old
 men came to pay their respects to George and a more shrewd and rascally looking
 company I have never seen, George told me that some of these men own up to three
 thousand head of cattle and more. The chief was as fat and Rabelasian as his second in
 command was emaciated, bucktoothed and prim. The Chief shook hands with George
 and greeted me and settled himself on the wall of the resthouse porch opposite
 George. The lesser headmen, after politely greeting us, grouped themselves in a
 semi circle below the steps with their ‘aides’ respectfully standing behind them. I
 remained sitting in the only chair and watched the proceedings with interest and
 amusement.These old Masai, I noticed, cared nothing for adornment. They had proved 
 themselves as warriors in the past and were known to be wealthy and influential so did
 not need to make any display. Most of them had their heads comfortably shaved and
 wore only a drab blanket or goatskin cloak. Their only ornaments were earrings whose
 effect was somewhat marred by the serviceable and homely large safety pin that
 dangled from the lobe of one ear. All carried staves instead of spears and all, except for
 Buckteeth and one blind old skeleton of a man, appeared to have a keenly developed
 sense of humour.“Mummy?” asked John in an urgent whisper, “Is that old blind man nearly dead?” 
 “Yes dear”, said I, “I expect he’ll soon die.” “What here?” breathed John in a tone of
 keen anticipation and, until the meeting broke up and the old man left, he had John’s
 undivided attention.After local news and the game situation had been discussed, the talk turned to the 
 war. “When will the war end?” moaned the fat Chief. “We have made great gifts of cattle
 to the War Funds, we are taxed out of existence.” George replied with the Ki-Swahili
 equivalent of ‘Sez you!’. This sally was received with laughter and the old fellows rose to
 go. They made their farewells and dignified exits, pausing on their way to stare at our
 pink and white Henry, who sat undismayed in his push chair giving them stare for stare
 from his striking grey eyes.Towards evening some Masai, prompted no doubt by our native servants, 
 brought a sheep for sale. It was the last night of the fast of Ramadan and our
 Mohammedan boys hoped to feast next day at our expense. Their faces fell when
 George refused to buy the animal. “Why should I pay fifteen shillings for a sheep?” he
 asked, “Am I not the Bwana Nyama and is not the bush full of my sheep?” (Bwana
 Nyama is the native name for a Game Ranger, but means literally, ‘Master of the meat’)
 George meant that he would shoot a buck for the men next day, but this incident was to
 have a strange sequel. Ngassamet resthouse consists of one room so small we could
 not put up all our camp beds and George and I slept on the cement floor which was
 unkind to my curves. The night was bitterly cold and all night long hyaenas screeched
 hideously outside. So we rose at dawn without reluctance and were on our way before it
 was properly light.George had decided that it would be foolhardy to return home by our outward 
 route as he did not care to risk another crossing of the suspension bridge. So we
 returned to Nabarera and there turned onto a little used track which would eventually take
 us to the Great North Road a few miles South of Arusha. There was not much game
 about but I saw Oryx which I had not previously seen. Soon it grew intolerably hot and I
 think all of us but George were dozing when he suddenly stopped the lorry and pointed
 to the right. “Mpishi”, he called to the cook, “There’s your sheep!” True enough, on that
 dreary thorn covered plain,with not another living thing in sight, stood a fat black sheep.There was an incredulous babbling from the back of the lorry. Every native 
 jumped to the ground and in no time at all the wretched sheep was caught and
 slaughtered. I felt sick. “Oh George”, I wailed, “The poor lost sheep! I shan’t eat a scrap
 of it.” George said nothing but went and had a look at the sheep and called out to me,
 “Come and look at it. It was kindness to kill the poor thing, the vultures have been at it
 already and the hyaenas would have got it tonight.” I went reluctantly and saw one eye
 horribly torn out, and small deep wounds on the sheep’s back where the beaks of the
 vultures had cut through the heavy fleece. Poor thing! I went back to the lorry more
 determined than ever not to eat mutton on that trip. The Scouts and servants had no
 such scruples. The fine fat sheep had been sent by Allah for their feast day and that was
 the end of it.“ ‘Mpishi’ is more convinced than ever that I am a wizard”, said George in 
 amusement as he started the lorry. I knew what he meant. Several times before George
 had foretold something which had later happened. Pure coincidence, but strange enough
 to give rise to a legend that George had the power to arrange things. “What happened
 of course”, explained George, “Is that a flock of Masai sheep was driven to market along
 this track yesterday or the day before. This one strayed and was not missed.”The day grew hotter and hotter and for long miles we looked out for a camping 
 spot but could find little shade and no trace of water anywhere. At last, in the early
 afternoon we reached another pokey little rest house and asked for water. “There is no
 water here,” said the native caretaker. “Early in the morning there is water in a well nearby
 but we are allowed only one kerosene tin full and by ten o’clock the well is dry.” I looked
 at George in dismay for we were all so tired and dusty. “Where do the Masai from the
 village water their cattle then?” asked George. “About two miles away through the bush.
 If you take me with you I shall show you”, replied the native.So we turned off into the bush and followed a cattle track even more tortuous than 
 the one to Lolbeni. Two Scouts walked ahead to warn us of hazards and I stretched my
 arm across the open window to fend off thorns. Henry screamed with fright and hunger.
 But George’s efforts to reach water went unrewarded as we were brought to a stop by
 a deep donga. The native from the resthouse was apologetic. He had mistaken the
 path, perhaps if we turned back we might find it. George was beyond speech. We
 lurched back the way we had come and made our camp under the first large tree we
 could find. Then off went our camp boys on foot to return just before dark with the water.
 However they were cheerful for there was an unlimited quantity of dry wood for their fires
 and meat in plenty for their feast. Long after George and I left our campfire and had gone
 to bed, we could see the cheerful fires of the boys and hear their chatter and laughter.
 I woke in the small hours to hear the insane cackling of hyaenas gloating over a
 find. Later I heard scuffling around the camp table, I peered over the tailboard of the lorry
 and saw George come out of his tent. What are you doing?” I whispered. “Looking for
 something to throw at those bloody hyaenas,” answered George for all the world as
 though those big brutes were tomcats on the prowl. Though the hyaenas kept up their
 concert all night the children never stirred, nor did any of them wake at night throughout
 the safari.Early next morning I walked across to the camp kitchen to enquire into the loud 
 lamentations coming from that quarter. “Oh Memsahib”, moaned the cook, “We could
 not sleep last night for the bad hyaenas round our tents. They have taken every scrap of
 meat we had left over from the feast., even the meat we had left to smoke over the fire.”
 Jim, who of our three young sons is the cook’s favourite commiserated with him. He said
 in Ki-Swahili, which he speaks with great fluency, “Truly those hyaenas are very bad
 creatures. They also robbed us. They have taken my hat from the table and eaten the
 new soap from the washbowl.Our last day in the bush was a pleasantly lazy one. We drove through country 
 that grew more open and less dry as we approached Arusha. We pitched our camp
 near a large dam, and the water was a blessed sight after a week of scorched country.
 On the plains to the right of our camp was a vast herd of native cattle enjoying a brief
 rest after their long day trek through Masailand. They were destined to walk many more
 weary miles before reaching their destination, a meat canning factory in Kenya.
 The ground to the left of the camp rose gently to form a long low hill and on the
 grassy slopes we could see wild ostriches and herds of wildebeest, zebra and
 antelope grazing amicably side by side. In the late afternoon I watched the groups of
 zebra and wildebeest merge into one. Then with a wildebeest leading, they walked
 down the slope in single file to drink at the vlei . When they were satisfied, a wildebeest
 once more led the herd up the trail. The others followed in a long and orderly file, and
 vanished over the hill to their evening pasture.When they had gone, George took up his shotgun and invited John to 
 accompany him to the dam to shoot duck. This was the first time John had acted as
 retriever but he did very well and proudly helped to carry a mixed bag of sand grouse
 and duck back to camp.Next morning we turned into the Great North Road and passed first through 
 carefully tended coffee shambas and then through the township of Arusha, nestling at
 the foot of towering Mount Meru. Beyond Arusha we drove through the Usa River
 settlement where again coffee shambas and European homesteads line the road, and
 saw before us the magnificent spectacle of Kilimanjaro unveiled, its white snow cap
 gleaming in the sunlight. Before mid day we were home. “Well was it worth it?” enquired
 George at lunch. “Lovely,” I replied. ”Let’s go again soon.” Then thinking regretfully of
 our absent children I sighed, “If only Ann, George, and Kate could have gone with us
 too.”Lyamungu 10th November. 1944 Dearest Family. Mummy wants to know how I fill in my time with George away on safari for weeks 
 on end. I do believe that you all picture me idling away my days, waited on hand and
 foot by efficient servants! On the contrary, life is one rush and the days never long
 enough.To begin with, our servants are anything but efficient, apart from our cook, Hamisi 
 Issa, who really is competent. He suffers from frustration because our budget will not run
 to elaborate dishes so there is little scope for his culinary art. There is one masterpiece
 which is much appreciated by John and Jim. Hamisi makes a most realistic crocodile out
 of pastry and stuffs its innards with minced meat. This revolting reptile is served on a
 bed of parsley on my largest meat dish. The cook is a strict Mohammedan and
 observes all the fasts and daily prayers and, like all Mohammedans he is very clean in
 his person and, thank goodness, in the kitchen.His wife is his pride and joy but not his helpmate. She does absolutely nothing 
 but sit in a chair in the sun all day, sipping tea and smoking cigarettes – a more
 expensive brand than mine! It is Hamisi who sweeps out their quarters, cooks
 delectable curries for her, and spends more than he can afford on clothing and trinkets for
 his wife. She just sits there with her ‘Mona Lisa’ smile and her painted finger and toe
 nails, doing absolutely nothing.The thing is that natives despise women who do work and this applies especially 
 to their white employers. House servants much prefer a Memsahib who leaves
 everything to them and is careless about locking up her pantry. When we first came to
 Lyamungu I had great difficulty in employing a houseboy. A couple of rather efficient
 ones did approach me but when they heard the wages I was prepared to pay and that
 there was no number 2 boy, they simply were not interested. Eventually I took on a
 local boy called Japhet who suits me very well except that his sight is not good and he
 is extremely hard on the crockery. He tells me that he has lost face by working here
 because his friends say that he works for a family that is too mean to employ a second
 boy. I explained that with our large family we simply cannot afford to pay more, but this
 didn’t register at all. Japhet says “But Wazungu (Europeans) all have money. They just
 have to get it from the Bank.”The third member of our staff is a strapping youth named Tovelo who helps both 
 cook and boy, and consequently works harder than either. What do I do? I chivvy the
 servants, look after the children, supervise John’s lessons, and make all my clothing and
 the children’s on that blessed old hand sewing machine.The folk on this station entertain a good deal but we usually decline invitations 
 because we simply cannot afford to reciprocate. However, last Saturday night I invited
 two couples to drinks and dinner. This was such an unusual event that the servants and I
 were thrown into a flurry. In the end the dinner went off well though it ended in disaster. In
 spite of my entreaties and exhortations to Japhet not to pile everything onto the tray at
 once when clearing the table, he did just that. We were starting our desert and I was
 congratulating myself that all had gone well when there was a frightful crash of breaking
 china on the back verandah. I excused myself and got up to investigate. A large meat
 dish, six dinner plates and four vegetable dishes lay shattered on the cement floor! I
 controlled my tongue but what my eyes said to Japhet is another matter. What he said
 was, “It is not my fault Memsahib. The handle of the tray came off.”It is a curious thing about native servants that they never accept responsibility for 
 a mishap. If they cannot pin their misdeeds onto one of their fellow servants then the responsibility rests with God. ‘Shauri ya Mungu’, (an act of God) is a familiar cry. Fatalists
 can be very exasperating employees.The loss of my dinner service is a real tragedy because, being war time, one can 
 buy only china of the poorest quality made for the native trade. Nor was that the final
 disaster of the evening. When we moved to the lounge for coffee I noticed that the
 coffee had been served in the battered old safari coffee pot instead of the charming little
 antique coffee pot which my Mother-in-law had sent for our tenth wedding anniversary.
 As there had already been a disturbance I made no comment but resolved to give the
 cook a piece of my mind in the morning. My instructions to the cook had been to warm
 the coffee pot with hot water immediately before serving. On no account was he to put
 the pewter pot on the hot iron stove. He did and the result was a small hole in the base
 of the pot – or so he says. When I saw the pot next morning there was a two inch hole in
 it.Hamisi explained placidly how this had come about. He said he knew I would be 
 mad when I saw the little hole so he thought he would have it mended and I might not
 notice it. Early in the morning he had taken the pewter pot to the mechanic who looks
 after the Game Department vehicles and had asked him to repair it. The bright individual
 got busy with the soldering iron with the most devastating result. “It’s his fault,” said
 Hamisi, “He is a mechanic, he should have known what would happen.”
 One thing is certain, there will be no more dinner parties in this house until the war
 is ended.The children are well and so am I, and so was George when he left on his safari 
 last Monday.Much love, 
 Eleanor.February 2, 2022 at 12:33 pm #6266In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesFrom Tanganyika with Love continued part 7 With thanks to Mike Rushby. Oldeani Hospital. 19th September 1938 Dearest Family, George arrived today to take us home to Mbulu but Sister Marianne will not allow 
 me to travel for another week as I had a bit of a set back after baby’s birth. At first I was
 very fit and on the third day Sister stripped the bed and, dictionary in hand, started me
 off on ante natal exercises. “Now make a bridge Mrs Rushby. So. Up down, up down,’
 whilst I obediently hoisted myself aloft on heels and head. By the sixth day she
 considered it was time for me to be up and about but alas, I soon had to return to bed
 with a temperature and a haemorrhage. I got up and walked outside for the first time this
 morning.I have had lots of visitors because the local German settlers seem keen to see 
 the first British baby born in the hospital. They have been most kind, sending flowers
 and little German cards of congratulations festooned with cherubs and rather sweet. Most
 of the women, besides being pleasant, are very smart indeed, shattering my illusion that
 German matrons are invariably fat and dowdy. They are all much concerned about the
 Czecko-Slovakian situation, especially Sister Marianne whose home is right on the
 border and has several relations who are Sudentan Germans. She is ant-Nazi and
 keeps on asking me whether I think England will declare war if Hitler invades Czecko-
 Slovakia, as though I had inside information.George tells me that he has had a grass ‘banda’ put up for us at Mbulu as we are 
 both determined not to return to those prison-like quarters in the Fort. Sister Marianne is
 horrified at the idea of taking a new baby to live in a grass hut. She told George,
 “No,No,Mr Rushby. I find that is not to be allowed!” She is an excellent Sister but rather
 prim and George enjoys teasing her. This morning he asked with mock seriousness,
 “Sister, why has my wife not received her medal?” Sister fluttered her dictionary before
 asking. “What medal Mr Rushby”. “Why,” said George, “The medal that Hitler gives to
 women who have borne four children.” Sister started a long and involved explanation
 about the medal being only for German mothers whilst George looked at me and
 grinned.Later. Great Jubilation here. By the noise in Sister Marianne’s sitting room last night it 
 sounded as though the whole German population had gathered to listen to the wireless
 news. I heard loud exclamations of joy and then my bedroom door burst open and
 several women rushed in. “Thank God “, they cried, “for Neville Chamberlain. Now there
 will be no war.” They pumped me by the hand as though I were personally responsible
 for the whole thing.George on the other hand is disgusted by Chamberlain’s lack of guts. Doesn’t 
 know what England is coming to these days. I feel too content to concern myself with
 world affairs. I have a fine husband and four wonderful children and am happy, happy,
 happy.Eleanor. Mbulu. 30th September 1938 Dearest Family, Here we are, comfortably installed in our little green house made of poles and 
 rushes from a nearby swamp. The house has of course, no doors or windows, but
 there are rush blinds which roll up in the day time. There are two rooms and a little porch
 and out at the back there is a small grass kitchen.Here we have the privacy which we prize so highly as we are screened on one 
 side by a Forest Department plantation and on the other three sides there is nothing but
 the rolling countryside cropped bare by the far too large herds of cattle and goats of the
 Wambulu. I have a lovely lazy time. I still have Kesho-Kutwa and the cook we brought
 with us from the farm. They are both faithful and willing souls though not very good at
 their respective jobs. As one of these Mbeya boys goes on safari with George whose
 job takes him from home for three weeks out of four, I have taken on a local boy to cut
 firewood and heat my bath water and generally make himself useful. His name is Saa,
 which means ‘Clock’We had an uneventful but very dusty trip from Oldeani. Johnny Jo travelled in his 
 pram in the back of the boxbody and got covered in dust but seems none the worst for
 it. As the baby now takes up much of my time and Kate was showing signs of
 boredom, I have engaged a little African girl to come and play with Kate every morning.
 She is the daughter of the head police Askari and a very attractive and dignified little
 person she is. Her name is Kajyah. She is scrupulously clean, as all Mohammedan
 Africans seem to be. Alas, Kajyah, though beautiful, is a bore. She simply does not
 know how to play, so they just wander around hand in hand.There are only two drawbacks to this little house. Mbulu is a very windy spot so 
 our little reed house is very draughty. I have made a little tent of sheets in one corner of
 the ‘bedroom’ into which I can retire with Johnny when I wish to bathe or sponge him.
 The other drawback is that many insects are attracted at night by the lamp and make it
 almost impossible to read or sew and they have a revolting habit of falling into the soup.
 There are no dangerous wild animals in this area so I am not at all nervous in this
 flimsy little house when George is on safari. Most nights hyaenas come around looking
 for scraps but our dogs, Fanny and Paddy, soon see them off.Eleanor. Mbulu. 25th October 1938 Dearest Family, Great news! a vacancy has occurred in the Game Department. George is to 
 transfer to it next month. There will be an increase in salary and a brighter prospect for
 the future. It will mean a change of scene and I shall be glad of that. We like Mbulu and
 the people here but the rains have started and our little reed hut is anything but water
 tight.Before the rain came we had very unpleasant dust storms. I think I told you that 
 this is a treeless area and the grass which normally covers the veldt has been cropped
 to the roots by the hungry native cattle and goats. When the wind blows the dust
 collects in tall black columns which sweep across the country in a most spectacular
 fashion. One such dust devil struck our hut one day whilst we were at lunch. George
 swept Kate up in a second and held her face against his chest whilst I rushed to Johnny
 Jo who was asleep in his pram, and stooped over the pram to protect him. The hut
 groaned and creaked and clouds of dust blew in through the windows and walls covering
 our persons, food, and belongings in a black pall. The dogs food bowls and an empty
 petrol tin outside the hut were whirled up and away. It was all over in a moment but you
 should have seen what a family of sweeps we looked. George looked at our blackened
 Johnny and mimicked in Sister Marianne’s primmest tones, “I find that this is not to be
 allowed.”The first rain storm caught me unprepared when George was away on safari. It 
 was a terrific thunderstorm. The quite violent thunder and lightening were followed by a
 real tropical downpour. As the hut is on a slight slope, the storm water poured through
 the hut like a river, covering the entire floor, and the roof leaked like a lawn sprinkler.
 Johnny Jo was snug enough in the pram with the hood raised, but Kate and I had a
 damp miserable night. Next morning I had deep drains dug around the hut and when
 George returned from safari he managed to borrow an enormous tarpaulin which is now
 lashed down over the roof.It did not rain during the next few days George was home but the very next night 
 we were in trouble again. I was awakened by screams from Kate and hurriedly turned up
 the lamp to see that we were in the midst of an invasion of siafu ants. Kate’s bed was
 covered in them. Others appeared to be raining down from the thatch. I quickly stripped
 Kate and carried her across to my bed, whilst I rushed to the pram to see whether
 Johnny Jo was all right. He was fast asleep, bless him, and slept on through all the
 commotion, whilst I struggled to pick all the ants out of Kate’s hair, stopping now and
 again to attend to my own discomfort. These ants have a painful bite and seem to
 choose all the most tender spots. Kate fell asleep eventually but I sat up for the rest of
 the night to make sure that the siafu kept clear of the children. Next morning the servants
 dispersed them by laying hot ash.In spite of the dampness of the hut both children are blooming. Kate has rosy 
 cheeks and Johnny Jo now has a fuzz of fair hair and has lost his ‘old man’ look. He
 reminds me of Ann at his age.Eleanor. Iringa. 30th November 1938 Dearest Family, Here we are back in the Southern Highlands and installed on the second floor of 
 another German Fort. This one has been modernised however and though not so
 romantic as the Mbulu Fort from the outside, it is much more comfortable.We are all well
 and I am really proud of our two safari babies who stood up splendidly to a most trying
 journey North from Mbulu to Arusha and then South down the Great North Road to
 Iringa where we expect to stay for a month.At Arusha George reported to the headquarters of the Game Department and 
 was instructed to come on down here on Rinderpest Control. There is a great flap on in
 case the rinderpest spread to Northern Rhodesia and possibly onwards to Southern
 Rhodesia and South Africa. Extra veterinary officers have been sent to this area to
 inoculate all the cattle against the disease whilst George and his African game Scouts will
 comb the bush looking for and destroying diseased game. If the rinderpest spreads,
 George says it may be necessary to shoot out all the game in a wide belt along the
 border between the Southern Highlands of Tanganyika and Northern Rhodesia, to
 prevent the disease spreading South. The very idea of all this destruction sickens us
 both.George left on a foot safari the day after our arrival and I expect I shall be lucky if I 
 see him occasionally at weekends until this job is over. When rinderpest is under control
 George is to be stationed at a place called Nzassa in the Eastern Province about 18
 miles from Dar es Salaam. George’s orderly, who is a tall, cheerful Game Scout called
 Juma, tells me that he has been stationed at Nzassa and it is a frightful place! However I
 refuse to be depressed. I now have the cheering prospect of leave to England in thirty
 months time when we will be able to fetch Ann and George and be a proper family
 again. Both Ann and George look happy in the snapshots which mother-in-law sends
 frequently. Ann is doing very well at school and loves it.To get back to our journey from Mbulu. It really was quite an experience. It 
 poured with rain most of the way and the road was very slippery and treacherous the
 120 miles between Mbulu and Arusha. This is a little used earth road and the drains are
 so blocked with silt as to be practically non existent. As usual we started our move with
 the V8 loaded to capacity. I held Johnny on my knee and Kate squeezed in between
 George and me. All our goods and chattels were in wooden boxes stowed in the back
 and the two houseboys and the two dogs had to adjust themselves to the space that
 remained. We soon ran into trouble and it took us all day to travel 47 miles. We stuck
 several times in deep mud and had some most nasty skids. I simply clutched Kate in
 one hand and Johnny Jo in the other and put my trust in George who never, under any
 circumstances, loses his head. Poor Johnny only got his meals when circumstances
 permitted. Unfortunately I had put him on a bottle only a few days before we left Mbulu
 and, as I was unable to buy either a primus stove or Thermos flask there we had to
 make a fire and boil water for each meal. Twice George sat out in the drizzle with a rain
 coat rapped over his head to protect a miserable little fire of wet sticks drenched with
 paraffin. Whilst we waited for the water to boil I pacified John by letting him suck a cube
 of Tate and Lyles sugar held between my rather grubby fingers. Not at all according to
 the book.That night George, the children and I slept in the car having dumped our boxes 
 and the two servants in a deserted native hut. The rain poured down relentlessly all night
 and by morning the road was more of a morass than ever. We swerved and skidded
 alarmingly till eventually one of the wheel chains broke and had to be tied together with
 string which constantly needed replacing. George was so patient though he was wet
 and muddy and tired and both children were very good. Shortly before reaching the Great North Road we came upon Jack Gowan, the Stock Inspector from Mbulu. His car
 was bogged down to its axles in black mud. He refused George’s offer of help saying
 that he had sent his messenger to a nearby village for help.I hoped that conditions would be better on the Great North Road but how over 
 optimistic I was. For miles the road runs through a belt of ‘black cotton soil’. which was
 churned up into the consistency of chocolate blancmange by the heavy lorry traffic which
 runs between Dodoma and Arusha. Soon the car was skidding more fantastically than
 ever. Once it skidded around in a complete semi circle so George decided that it would
 be safer for us all to walk whilst he negotiated the very bad patches. You should have
 seen me plodding along in the mud and drizzle with the baby in one arm and Kate
 clinging to the other. I was terrified of slipping with Johnny. Each time George reached
 firm ground he would return on foot to carry Kate and in this way we covered many bad
 patches.We were more fortunate than many other travellers. We passed several lorries
 ditched on the side of the road and one car load of German men, all elegantly dressed in
 lounge suits. One was busy with his camera so will have a record of their plight to laugh
 over in the years to come. We spent another night camping on the road and next day
 set out on the last lap of the journey. That also was tiresome but much better than the
 previous day and we made the haven of the Arusha Hotel before dark. What a picture
 we made as we walked through the hall in our mud splattered clothes! Even Johnny was
 well splashed with mud but no harm was done and both he and Kate are blooming.
 We rested for two days at Arusha and then came South to Iringa. Luckily the sun
 came out and though for the first day the road was muddy it was no longer so slippery
 and the second day found us driving through parched country and along badly
 corrugated roads. The further South we came, the warmer the sun which at times blazed
 through the windscreen and made us all uncomfortably hot. I have described the country
 between Arusha and Dodoma before so I shan’t do it again. We reached Iringa without
 mishap and after a good nights rest all felt full of beans.Eleanor. Mchewe Estate, Mbeya. 7th January 1939. Dearest Family, You will be surprised to note that we are back on the farm! At least the children 
 and I are here. George is away near the Rhodesian border somewhere, still on
 Rinderpest control.I had a pleasant time at Iringa, lots of invitations to morning tea and Kate had a 
 wonderful time enjoying the novelty of playing with children of her own age. She is not
 shy but nevertheless likes me to be within call if not within sight. It was all very suburban
 but pleasant enough. A few days before Christmas George turned up at Iringa and
 suggested that, as he would be working in the Mbeya area, it might be a good idea for
 the children and me to move to the farm. I agreed enthusiastically, completely forgetting
 that after my previous trouble with the leopard I had vowed to myself that I would never
 again live alone on the farm.Alas no sooner had we arrived when Thomas, our farm headman, brought the 
 news that there were now two leopards terrorising the neighbourhood, and taking dogs,
 goats and sheep and chickens. Traps and poisoned bait had been tried in vain and he
 was sure that the female was the same leopard which had besieged our home before.
 Other leopards said Thomas, came by stealth but this one advertised her whereabouts
 in the most brazen manner.George stayed with us on the farm over Christmas and all was quiet at night so I 
 cheered up and took the children for walks along the overgrown farm paths. However on
 New Years Eve that darned leopard advertised her presence again with the most blood
 chilling grunts and snarls. Horrible! Fanny and Paddy barked and growled and woke up
 both children. Kate wept and kept saying, “Send it away mummy. I don’t like it.” Johnny
 Jo howled in sympathy. What a picnic. So now the whole performance of bodyguards
 has started again and ‘till George returns we confine our exercise to the garden.
 Our little house is still cosy and sweet but the coffee plantation looks very
 neglected. I wish to goodness we could sell it.Eleanor. Nzassa 14th February 1939. Dearest Family, After three months of moving around with two small children it is heavenly to be 
 settled in our own home, even though Nzassa is an isolated spot and has the reputation
 of being unhealthy.We travelled by car from Mbeya to Dodoma by now a very familiar stretch of 
 country, but from Dodoma to Dar es Salaam by train which made a nice change. We
 spent two nights and a day in the Splendid Hotel in Dar es Salaam, George had some
 official visits to make and I did some shopping and we took the children to the beach.
 The bay is so sheltered that the sea is as calm as a pond and the water warm. It is
 wonderful to see the sea once more and to hear tugs hooting and to watch the Arab
 dhows putting out to sea with their oddly shaped sails billowing. I do love the bush, but
 I love the sea best of all, as you know.We made an early start for Nzassa on the 3rd. For about four miles we bowled 
 along a good road. This brought us to a place called Temeke where George called on
 the District Officer. His house appears to be the only European type house there. The
 road between Temeke and the turn off to Nzassa is quite good, but the six mile stretch
 from the turn off to Nzassa is a very neglected bush road. There is nothing to be seen
 but the impenetrable bush on both sides with here and there a patch of swampy
 ground where rice is planted in the wet season.After about six miles of bumpy road we reached Nzassa which is nothing more 
 than a sandy clearing in the bush. Our house however is a fine one. It was originally built
 for the District Officer and there is a small court house which is now George’s office. The
 District Officer died of blackwater fever so Nzassa was abandoned as an administrative
 station being considered too unhealthy for Administrative Officers but suitable as
 Headquarters for a Game Ranger. Later a bachelor Game Ranger was stationed here
 but his health also broke down and he has been invalided to England. So now the
 healthy Rushbys are here and we don’t mean to let the place get us down. So don’t
 worry.The house consists of three very large and airy rooms with their doors opening 
 on to a wide front verandah which we shall use as a living room. There is also a wide
 back verandah with a store room at one end and a bathroom at the other. Both
 verandahs and the end windows of the house are screened my mosquito gauze wire
 and further protected by a trellis work of heavy expanded metal. Hasmani, the Game
 Scout, who has been acting as caretaker, tells me that the expanded metal is very
 necessary because lions often come out of the bush at night and roam around the
 house. Such a comforting thought!On our very first evening we discovered how necessary the mosquito gauze is. 
 After sunset the air outside is thick with mosquitos from the swamps. About an acre of
 land has been cleared around the house. This is a sandy waste because there is no
 water laid on here and absolutely nothing grows here except a rather revolting milky
 desert bush called ‘Manyara’, and a few acacia trees. A little way from the house there is
 a patch of citrus trees, grape fruit, I think, but whether they ever bear fruit I don’t know.
 The clearing is bordered on three sides by dense dusty thorn bush which is
 ‘lousy with buffalo’ according to George. The open side is the road which leads down to
 George’s office and the huts for the Game Scouts. Only Hasmani and George’s orderly
 Juma and their wives and families live there, and the other huts provide shelter for the
 Game Scouts from the bush who come to Nzassa to collect their pay and for a short
 rest. I can see that my daily walk will always be the same, down the road to the huts and
 back! However I don’t mind because it is far too hot to take much exercise.The climate here is really tropical and worse than on the coast because the thick 
 bush cuts us off from any sea breeze. George says it will be cooler when the rains start
 but just now we literally drip all day. Kate wears nothing but a cotton sun suit, and Johnny
 a napkin only, but still their little bodies are always moist. I have shorn off all Kate’s lovely
 shoulder length curls and got George to cut my hair very short too.We simply must buy a refrigerator. The butter, and even the cheese we bought 
 in Dar. simply melted into pools of oil overnight, and all our meat went bad, so we are
 living out of tins. However once we get organised I shall be quite happy here. I like this
 spacious house and I have good servants. The cook, Hamisi Issa, is a Swahili from Lindi
 whom we engaged in Dar es Salaam. He is a very dignified person, and like most
 devout Mohammedan Cooks, keeps both his person and the kitchen spotless. I
 engaged the house boy here. He is rather a timid little body but is very willing and quite
 capable. He has an excessively plain but cheerful wife whom I have taken on as ayah. I
 do not really need help with the children but feel I must have a woman around just in
 case I go down with malaria when George is away on safari.Eleanor. Nzassa 28th February 1939. Dearest Family, George’s birthday and we had a special tea party this afternoon which the 
 children much enjoyed. We have our frig now so I am able to make jellies and provide
 them with really cool drinks.Our very first visitor left this morning after spending only one night here. He is Mr 
 Ionides, the Game Ranger from the Southern Province. He acted as stand in here for a
 short while after George’s predecessor left for England on sick leave, and where he has
 since died. Mr Ionides returned here to hand over the range and office formally to
 George. He seems a strange man and is from all accounts a bit of a hermit. He was at
 one time an Officer in the Regular Army but does not look like a soldier, he wears the
 most extraordinary clothes but nevertheless contrives to look top-drawer. He was
 educated at Rugby and Sandhurst and is, I should say, well read. Ionides told us that he
 hated Nzassa, particularly the house which he thinks sinister and says he always slept
 down in the office.The house, or at least one bedroom, seems to have the same effect on Kate. 
 She has been very nervous at night ever since we arrived. At first the children occupied
 the bedroom which is now George’s. One night, soon after our arrival, Kate woke up
 screaming to say that ‘something’ had looked at her through the mosquito net. She was
 in such a hysterical state that inspite of the heat and discomfort I was obliged to crawl into
 her little bed with her and remained there for the rest of the night.Next night I left a night lamp burning but even so I had to sit by her bed until she 
 dropped off to sleep. Again I was awakened by ear-splitting screams and this time
 found Kate standing rigid on her bed. I lifted her out and carried her to a chair meaning to
 comfort her but she screeched louder than ever, “Look Mummy it’s under the bed. It’s
 looking at us.” In vain I pointed out that there was nothing at all there. By this time
 George had joined us and he carried Kate off to his bed in the other room whilst I got into
 Kate’s bed thinking she might have been frightened by a rat which might also disturb
 Johnny.Next morning our houseboy remarked that he had heard Kate screaming in the 
 night from his room behind the kitchen. I explained what had happened and he must
 have told the old Scout Hasmani who waylaid me that afternoon and informed me quite
 seriously that that particular room was haunted by a ‘sheitani’ (devil) who hates children.
 He told me that whilst he was acting as caretaker before our arrival he one night had his
 wife and small daughter in the room to keep him company. He said that his small
 daughter woke up and screamed exactly as Kate had done! Silly coincidence I
 suppose, but such strange things happen in Africa that I decided to move the children
 into our room and George sleeps in solitary state in the haunted room! Kate now sleeps
 peacefully once she goes to sleep but I have to stay with her until she does.I like this house and it does not seem at all sinister to me. As I mentioned before, 
 the rooms are high ceilinged and airy, and have cool cement floors. We have made one
 end of the enclosed verandah into the living room and the other end is the playroom for
 the children. The space in between is a sort of no-mans land taken over by the dogs as
 their special territory.Eleanor. Nzassa 25th March 1939. Dearest Family, George is on safari down in the Rufigi River area. He is away for about three 
 weeks in the month on this job. I do hate to see him go and just manage to tick over until
 he comes back. But what fun and excitement when he does come home.
 Usually he returns after dark by which time the children are in bed and I have
 settled down on the verandah with a book. The first warning is usually given by the
 dogs, Fanny and her son Paddy. They stir, sit up, look at each other and then go and sit
 side by side by the door with their noses practically pressed to the mosquito gauze and
 ears pricked. Soon I can hear the hum of the car, and so can Hasmani, the old Game
 Scout who sleeps on the back verandah with rifle and ammunition by his side when
 George is away. When he hears the car he turns up his lamp and hurries out to rouse
 Juma, the houseboy. Juma pokes up the fire and prepares tea which George always
 drinks whist a hot meal is being prepared. In the meantime I hurriedly comb my hair and
 powder my nose so that when the car stops I am ready to rush out and welcome
 George home. The boy and Hasmani and the garden boy appear to help with the
 luggage and to greet George and the cook, who always accompanies George on
 Safari. The home coming is always a lively time with much shouting of greetings.
 ‘Jambo’, and ‘Habari ya safari’, whilst the dogs, beside themselves with excitement,
 rush around like lunatics.As though his return were not happiness enough, George usually collects the 
 mail on his way home so there is news of Ann and young George and letters from you
 and bundles of newspapers and magazines. On the day following his return home,
 George has to deal with official mail in the office but if the following day is a weekday we
 all, the house servants as well as ourselves, pile into the boxbody and go to Dar es
 Salaam. To us this means a mornings shopping followed by an afternoon on the beach.
 It is a bit cooler now that the rains are on but still very humid. Kate keeps chubby
 and rosy in spite of the climate but Johnny is too pale though sturdy enough. He is such
 a good baby which is just as well because Kate is a very demanding little girl though
 sunny tempered and sweet. I appreciate her company very much when George is
 away because we are so far off the beaten track that no one ever calls.Eleanor. Nzassa 28th April 1939. Dearest Family, You all seem to wonder how I can stand the loneliness and monotony of living at 
 Nzassa when George is on safari, but really and truly I do not mind. Hamisi the cook
 always goes on safari with George and then the houseboy Juma takes over the cooking
 and I do the lighter housework. the children are great company during the day, and when
 they are settled for the night I sit on the verandah and read or write letters or I just dream.
 The verandah is entirely enclosed with both wire mosquito gauze and a trellis
 work of heavy expanded metal, so I am safe from all intruders be they human, animal, or
 insect. Outside the air is alive with mosquitos and the cicadas keep up their monotonous
 singing all night long. My only companions on the verandah are the pale ghecco lizards
 on the wall and the two dogs. Fanny the white bull terrier, lies always near my feet
 dozing happily, but her son Paddy, who is half Airedale has a less phlegmatic
 disposition. He sits alert and on guard by the metal trellis work door. Often a lion grunts
 from the surrounding bush and then his hackles rise and he stands up stiffly with his nose
 pressed to the door. Old Hasmani from his bedroll on the back verandah, gives a little
 cough just to show he is awake. Sometimes the lions are very close and then I hear the
 click of a rifle bolt as Hasmani loads his rifle – but this is usually much later at night when
 the lights are out. One morning I saw large pug marks between the wall of my bedroom
 and the garage but I do not fear lions like I did that beastly leopard on the farm.
 A great deal of witchcraft is still practiced in the bush villages in the
 neighbourhood. I must tell you about old Hasmani’s baby in connection with this. Last
 week Hasmani came to me in great distress to say that his baby was ‘Ngongwa sana ‘
 (very ill) and he thought it would die. I hurried down to the Game Scouts quarters to see
 whether I could do anything for the child and found the mother squatting in the sun
 outside her hut with the baby on her lap. The mother was a young woman but not an
 attractive one. She appeared sullen and indifferent compared with old Hasmani who
 was very distressed. The child was very feverish and breathing with difficulty and
 seemed to me to be suffering from bronchitis if not pneumonia. I rubbed his back and
 chest with camphorated oil and dosed him with aspirin and liquid quinine. I repeated the
 treatment every four hours, but next day there was no apparent improvement.
 In the afternoon Hasmani begged me to give him that night off duty and asked for
 a loan of ten shillings. He explained to me that it seemed to him that the white man’s
 medicine had failed to cure his child and now he wished to take the child to the local witch
 doctor. “For ten shillings” said Hasmani, “the Maganga will drive the devil out of my
 child.” “How?” asked I. “With drums”, said Hasmani confidently. I did not know what to
 do. I thought the child was too ill to be exposed to the night air, yet I knew that if I
 refused his request and the child were to die, Hasmani and all the other locals would hold
 me responsible. I very reluctantly granted his request. I was so troubled by the matter
 that I sent for George’s office clerk. Daniel, and asked him to accompany Hasmani to the
 ceremony and to report to me the next morning. It started to rain after dark and all night
 long I lay awake in bed listening to the drums and the light rain. Next morning when I
 went out to the kitchen to order breakfast I found a beaming Hasmani awaiting me.
 “Memsahib”, he said. “My child is well, the fever is now quite gone, the Maganga drove
 out the devil just as I told you.” Believe it or not, when I hurried to his quarters after
 breakfast I found the mother suckling a perfectly healthy child! It may be my imagination
 but I thought the mother looked pretty smug.The clerk Daniel told me that after Hasmani
 had presented gifts of money and food to the ‘Maganga’, the naked baby was placed
 on a goat skin near the drums. Most of the time he just lay there but sometimes the witch
 doctor picked him up and danced with the child in his arms. Daniel seemed reluctant to
 talk about it. Whatever mumbo jumbo was used all this happened a week ago and the
 baby has never looked back.Eleanor. Nzassa 3rd July 1939. Dearest Family, Did I tell you that one of George’s Game Scouts was murdered last month in the 
 Maneromango area towards the Rufigi border. He was on routine patrol, with a porter
 carrying his bedding and food, when they suddenly came across a group of African
 hunters who were busy cutting up a giraffe which they had just killed. These hunters were
 all armed with muzzle loaders, spears and pangas, but as it is illegal to kill giraffe without
 a permit, the Scout went up to the group to take their names. Some argument ensued
 and the Scout was stabbed.The District Officer went to the area to investigate and decided to call in the Police 
 from Dar es Salaam. A party of police went out to search for the murderers but after
 some days returned without making any arrests. George was on an elephant control
 safari in the Bagamoyo District and on his return through Dar es Salaam he heard of the
 murder. George was furious and distressed to hear the news and called in here for an
 hour on his way to Maneromango to search for the murderers himself.After a great deal of strenuous investigation he arrested three poachers, put them 
 in jail for the night at Maneromango and then brought them to Dar es Salaam where they
 are all now behind bars. George will now have to prosecute in the Magistrate’s Court
 and try and ‘make a case’ so that the prisoners may be committed to the High Court to
 be tried for murder. George is convinced of their guilt and justifiably proud to have
 succeeded where the police failed.George had to borrow handcuffs for the prisoners from the Chief at 
 Maneromango and these he brought back to Nzassa after delivering the prisoners to
 Dar es Salaam so that he may return them to the Chief when he revisits the area next
 week.I had not seen handcuffs before and picked up a pair to examine them. I said to 
 George, engrossed in ‘The Times’, “I bet if you were arrested they’d never get
 handcuffs on your wrist. Not these anyway, they look too small.” “Standard pattern,”
 said George still concentrating on the newspaper, but extending an enormous relaxed
 left wrist. So, my dears, I put a bracelet round his wrist and as there was a wide gap I
 gave a hard squeeze with both hands. There was a sharp click as the handcuff engaged
 in the first notch. George dropped the paper and said, “Now you’ve done it, my love,
 one set of keys are in the Dar es Salaam Police Station, and the others with the Chief at
 Maneromango.” You can imagine how utterly silly I felt but George was an angel about it
 and said as he would have to go to Dar es Salaam we might as well all go.So we all piled into the car, George, the children and I in the front, and the cook 
 and houseboy, immaculate in snowy khanzus and embroidered white caps, a Game
 Scout and the ayah in the back. George never once complain of the discomfort of the
 handcuff but I was uncomfortably aware that it was much too tight because his arm
 above the cuff looked red and swollen and the hand unnaturally pale. As the road is so
 bad George had to use both hands on the wheel and all the time the dangling handcuff
 clanked against the dashboard in an accusing way.We drove straight to the Police Station and I could hear the roars of laughter as 
 George explained his predicament. Later I had to put up with a good deal of chaffing
 and congratulations upon putting the handcuffs on George.Eleanor. Nzassa 5th August 1939 Dearest Family, George made a point of being here for Kate’s fourth birthday last week. Just 
 because our children have no playmates George and I always do all we can to make
 birthdays very special occasions. We went to Dar es Salaam the day before the
 birthday and bought Kate a very sturdy tricycle with which she is absolutely delighted.
 You will be glad to know that your parcels arrived just in time and Kate loved all your
 gifts especially the little shop from Dad with all the miniature tins and packets of
 groceries. The tea set was also a great success and is much in use.We had a lively party which ended with George and me singing ‘Happy 
 Birthday to you’, and ended with a wild game with balloons. Kate wore her frilly white net
 party frock and looked so pretty that it seemed a shame that there was no one but us to
 see her. Anyway it was a good party. I wish so much that you could see the children.
 Kate keeps rosy and has not yet had malaria. Johnny Jo is sturdy but pale. He
 runs a temperature now and again but I am not sure whether this is due to teething or
 malaria. Both children of course take quinine every day as George and I do. George
 quite frequently has malaria in spite of prophylactic quinine but this is not surprising as he
 got the germ thoroughly established in his system in his early elephant hunting days. I
 get it too occasionally but have not been really ill since that first time a month after my
 arrival in the country.Johnny is such a good baby. His chief claim to beauty is his head of soft golden 
 curls but these are due to come off on his first birthday as George considers them too
 girlish. George left on safari the day after the party and the very next morning our wood
 boy had a most unfortunate accident. He was chopping a rather tough log when a chip
 flew up and split his upper lip clean through from mouth to nostril exposing teeth and
 gums. A truly horrible sight and very bloody. I cleaned up the wound as best I could
 and sent him off to the hospital at Dar es Salaam on the office bicycle. He wobbled
 away wretchedly down the road with a white cloth tied over his mouth to keep off the
 dust. He returned next day with his lip stitched and very swollen and bearing a
 resemblance to my lip that time I used the hair remover.Eleanor. Splendid Hotel. Dar es Salaam 7th September 1939 Dearest Family, So now another war has started and it has disrupted even our lives. We have left 
 Nzassa for good. George is now a Lieutenant in the King’s African Rifles and the children
 and I are to go to a place called Morogoro to await further developments.
 I was glad to read in today’s paper that South Africa has declared war on
 Germany. I would have felt pretty small otherwise in this hotel which is crammed full of
 men who have been called up for service in the Army. George seems exhilarated by
 the prospect of active service. He is bursting out of his uniform ( at the shoulders only!)
 and all too ready for the fray.The war came as a complete surprise to me stuck out in the bush as I was without 
 wireless or mail. George had been away for a fortnight so you can imagine how
 surprised I was when a messenger arrived on a bicycle with a note from George. The
 note informed me that war had been declared and that George, as a Reserve Officer in
 the KAR had been called up. I was to start packing immediately and be ready by noon
 next day when George would arrive with a lorry for our goods and chattels. I started to
 pack immediately with the help of the houseboy and by the time George arrived with
 the lorry only the frig remained to be packed and this was soon done.Throughout the morning Game Scouts had been arriving from outlying parts of 
 the District. I don’t think they had the least idea where they were supposed to go or
 whom they were to fight but were ready to fight anybody, anywhere, with George.
 They all looked very smart in well pressed uniforms hung about with water bottles and
 ammunition pouches. The large buffalo badge on their round pill box hats absolutely
 glittered with polish. All of course carried rifles and when George arrived they all lined up
 and they looked most impressive. I took some snaps but unfortunately it was drizzling
 and they may not come out well.We left Nzassa without a backward glance. We were pretty fed up with it by 
 then. The children and I are spending a few days here with George but our luggage, the
 dogs, and the houseboys have already left by train for Morogoro where a small house
 has been found for the children and me.George tells me that all the German males in this Territory were interned without a 
 hitch. The whole affair must have been very well organised. In every town and
 settlement special constables were sworn in to do the job. It must have been a rather
 unpleasant one but seems to have gone without incident. There is a big transit camp
 here at Dar for the German men. Later they are to be sent out of the country, possibly to
 Rhodesia.The Indian tailors in the town are all terribly busy making Army uniforms, shorts 
 and tunics in khaki drill. George swears that they have muddled their orders and he has
 been given the wrong things. Certainly the tunic is far too tight. His hat, a khaki slouch hat
 like you saw the Australians wearing in the last war, is also too small though it is the
 largest they have in stock. We had a laugh over his other equipment which includes a
 small canvas haversack and a whistle on a black cord. George says he feels like he is
 back in his Boy Scouting boyhood.George has just come in to say the we will be leaving for Morogoro tomorrow 
 afternoon.Eleanor. Morogoro 14th September 1939 Dearest Family, Morogoro is a complete change from Nzassa. This is a large and sprawling 
 township. The native town and all the shops are down on the flat land by the railway but
 all the European houses are away up the slope of the high Uluguru Mountains.
 Morogoro was a flourishing town in the German days and all the streets are lined with
 trees for coolness as is the case in other German towns. These trees are the flamboyant
 acacia which has an umbrella top and throws a wide but light shade.Most of the houses have large gardens so they cover a considerable area and it 
 is quite a safari for me to visit friends on foot as our house is on the edge of this area and
 the furthest away from the town. Here ones house is in accordance with ones seniority in
 Government service. Ours is a simple affair, just three lofty square rooms opening on to
 a wide enclosed verandah. Mosquitoes are bad here so all doors and windows are
 screened and we will have to carry on with our daily doses of quinine.George came up to Morogoro with us on the train. This was fortunate because I 
 went down with a sharp attack of malaria at the hotel on the afternoon of our departure
 from Dar es Salaam. George’s drastic cure of vast doses of quinine, a pillow over my
 head, and the bed heaped with blankets soon brought down the temperature so I was
 fit enough to board the train but felt pretty poorly on the trip. However next day I felt
 much better which was a good thing as George had to return to Dar es Salaam after two
 days. His train left late at night so I did not see him off but said good-bye at home
 feeling dreadful but trying to keep the traditional stiff upper lip of the wife seeing her
 husband off to the wars. He hopes to go off to Abyssinia but wrote from Dar es Salaam
 to say that he is being sent down to Rhodesia by road via Mbeya to escort the first
 detachment of Rhodesian white troops.First he will have to select suitable camping sites for night stops and arrange for 
 supplies of food. I am very pleased as it means he will be safe for a while anyway. We
 are both worried about Ann and George in England and wonder if it would be safer to
 have them sent out.Eleanor. Morogoro 4th November 1939 Dearest Family, My big news is that George has been released from the Army. He is very 
 indignant and disappointed because he hoped to go to Abyssinia but I am terribly,
 terribly glad. The Chief Secretary wrote a very nice letter to George pointing out that he
 would be doing a greater service to his country by his work of elephant control, giving
 crop protection during the war years when foodstuffs are such a vital necessity, than by
 doing a soldiers job. The Government plan to start a huge rice scheme in the Rufiji area,
 and want George to control the elephant and hippo there. First of all though. he must go
 to the Southern Highlands Province where there is another outbreak of Rinderpest, to
 shoot out diseased game especially buffalo, which might spread the disease.So off we go again on our travels but this time we are leaving the two dogs 
 behind in the care of Daniel, the Game Clerk. Fanny is very pregnant and I hate leaving
 her behind but the clerk has promised to look after her well. We are taking Hamisi, our
 dignified Swahili cook and the houseboy Juma and his wife whom we brought with us
 from Nzassa. The boy is not very good but his wife makes a cheerful and placid ayah
 and adores Johnny.Eleanor. Iringa 8th December 1939 Dearest Family, The children and I are staying in a small German house leased from the 
 Custodian of Enemy Property. I can’t help feeling sorry for the owners who must be in
 concentration camps somewhere.George is away in the bush dealing with the
 Rinderpest emergency and the cook has gone with him. Now I have sent the houseboy
 and the ayah away too. Two days ago my houseboy came and told me that he felt
 very ill and asked me to write a ‘chit’ to the Indian Doctor. In the note I asked the Doctor
 to let me know the nature of his complaint and to my horror I got a note from him to say
 that the houseboy had a bad case of Venereal Disease. Was I horrified! I took it for
 granted that his wife must be infected too and told them both that they would have to
 return to their home in Nzassa. The boy shouted and the ayah wept but I paid them in
 lieu of notice and gave them money for the journey home. So there I was left servant
 less with firewood to chop, a smokey wood burning stove to control, and of course, the
 two children.To add to my troubles Johnny had a temperature so I sent for the European 
 Doctor. He diagnosed malaria and was astonished at the size of Johnny’s spleen. He
 said that he must have had suppressed malaria over a long period and the poor child
 must now be fed maximum doses of quinine for a long time. The Doctor is a fatherly
 soul, he has been recalled from retirement to do this job as so many of the young
 doctors have been called up for service with the army.I told him about my houseboy’s complaint and the way I had sent him off 
 immediately, and he was very amused at my haste, saying that it is most unlikely that
 they would have passed the disease onto their employers. Anyway I hated the idea. I
 mean to engage a houseboy locally, but will do without an ayah until we return to
 Morogoro in February.Something happened today to cheer me up. A telegram came from Daniel which 
 read, “FLANNEL HAS FIVE CUBS.”Eleanor. Morogoro 10th March 1940 Dearest Family, We are having very heavy rain and the countryside is a most beautiful green. In 
 spite of the weather George is away on safari though it must be very wet and
 unpleasant. He does work so hard at his elephant hunting job and has got very thin. I
 suppose this is partly due to those stomach pains he gets and the doctors don’t seem
 to diagnose the trouble.Living in Morogoro is much like living in a country town in South Africa, particularly 
 as there are several South African women here. I go out quite often to morning teas. We
 all take our war effort knitting, and natter, and are completely suburban.
 I sometimes go and see an elderly couple who have been interred here. They
 are cold shouldered by almost everyone else but I cannot help feeling sorry for them.
 Usually I go by invitation because I know Mrs Ruppel prefers to be prepared and
 always has sandwiches and cake. They both speak English but not fluently and
 conversation is confined to talking about my children and theirs. Their two sons were
 students in Germany when war broke out but are now of course in the German Army.
 Such nice looking chaps from their photographs but I suppose thorough Nazis. As our
 conversation is limited I usually ask to hear a gramophone record or two. They have a
 large collection.Janet, the ayah whom I engaged at Mbeya, is proving a great treasure. She is a 
 trained hospital ayah and is most dependable and capable. She is, perhaps, a little strict
 but the great thing is that I can trust her with the children out of my sight.
 Last week I went out at night for the first time without George. The occasion was
 a farewell sundowner given by the Commissioner of Prisoners and his wife. I was driven
 home by the District Officer and he stopped his car by the back door in a large puddle.
 Ayah came to the back door, storm lamp in hand, to greet me. My escort prepared to
 drive off but the car stuck. I thought a push from me might help, so without informing the
 driver, I pushed as hard as I could on the back of the car. Unfortunately the driver
 decided on other tactics. He put the engine in reverse and I was knocked flat on my back
 in the puddle. The car drove forward and away without the driver having the least idea of
 what happened. The ayah was in quite a state, lifting me up and scolding me for my
 stupidity as though I were Kate. I was a bit shaken but non the worse and will know
 better next time.Eleanor. Morogoro 14th July 1940 Dearest Family, How good it was of Dad to send that cable to Mother offering to have Ann and 
 George to live with you if they are accepted for inclusion in the list of children to be
 evacuated to South Africa. It would be wonderful to know that they are safely out of the
 war zone and so much nearer to us but I do dread the thought of the long sea voyage
 particularly since we heard the news of the sinking of that liner carrying child evacuees to
 Canada. I worry about them so much particularly as George is so often away on safari.
 He is so comforting and calm and I feel brave and confident when he is home.
 We have had no news from England for five weeks but, when she last wrote,
 mother said the children were very well and that she was sure they would be safe in the
 country with her.Kate and John are growing fast. Kate is such a pretty little girl, rosy in spite of the 
 rather trying climate. I have allowed her hair to grow again and it hangs on her shoulders
 in shiny waves. John is a more slightly built little boy than young George was, and quite
 different in looks. He has Dad’s high forehead and cleft chin, widely spaced brown eyes
 that are not so dark as mine and hair that is still fair and curly though ayah likes to smooth it
 down with water every time she dresses him. He is a shy child, and although he plays
 happily with Kate, he does not care to play with other children who go in the late
 afternoons to a lawn by the old German ‘boma’.Kate has playmates of her own age but still rather clings to me. Whilst she loves 
 to have friends here to play with her, she will not go to play at their houses unless I go
 too and stay. She always insists on accompanying me when I go out to morning tea
 and always calls Janet “John’s ayah”. One morning I went to a knitting session at a
 neighbours house. We are all knitting madly for the troops. As there were several other
 women in the lounge and no other children, I installed Kate in the dining room with a
 colouring book and crayons. My hostess’ black dog was chained to the dining room
 table leg, but as he and Kate are on friendly terms I was not bothered by this.
 Some time afterwards, during a lull in conversation, I heard a strange drumming
 noise coming from the dining room. I went quickly to investigate and, to my horror, found
 Kate lying on her back with the dog chain looped around her neck. The frightened dog
 was straining away from her as far as he could get and the chain was pulled so tightly
 around her throat that she could not scream. The drumming noise came from her heels
 kicking in a panic on the carpet.Even now I do not know how Kate got herself into this predicament. Luckily no 
 great harm was done but I think I shall do my knitting at home in future.Eleanor. Morogoro 16th November 1940 Dearest Family, I much prefer our little house on the hillside to the larger one we had down below. 
 The only disadvantage is that the garden is on three levels and both children have had
 some tumbles down the steps on the tricycle. John is an extremely stoical child. He
 never cries when he hurts himself.I think I have mentioned ‘Morningside’ before. It is a kind of Resthouse high up in 
 the Uluguru Mountains above Morogoro. Jess Howe-Browne, who runs the large
 house as a Guest House, is a wonderful woman. Besides running the boarding house
 she also grows vegetables, flowers and fruit for sale in Morogoro and Dar es Salaam.
 Her guests are usually women and children from Dar es Salaam who come in the hot
 season to escape the humidity on the coast. Often the mothers leave their children for
 long periods in Jess Howe-Browne’s care. There is a road of sorts up the mountain side
 to Morningside, but this is so bad that cars do not attempt it and guests are carried up
 the mountain in wicker chairs lashed to poles. Four men carry an adult, and two a child,
 and there are of course always spare bearers and they work in shifts.Last week the children and I went to Morningside for the day as guests. John 
 rode on my lap in one chair and Kate in a small chair on her own. This did not please
 Kate at all. The poles are carried on the bearers shoulders and one is perched quite high.
 The motion is a peculiar rocking one. The bearers chant as they go and do not seem
 worried by shortness of breath! They are all hillmen of course and are, I suppose, used
 to trotting up and down to the town.Morningside is well worth visiting and we spent a delightful day there. The fresh 
 cool air is a great change from the heavy air of the valley. A river rushes down the
 mountain in a series of cascades, and the gardens are shady and beautiful. Behind the
 property is a thick indigenous forest which stretches from Morningside to the top of the
 mountain. The house is an old German one, rather in need of repair, but Jess has made
 it comfortable and attractive, with some of her old family treasures including a fine old
 Grandfather clock. We had a wonderful lunch which included large fresh strawberries and
 cream. We made the return journey again in the basket chairs and got home before dark.
 George returned home at the weekend with a baby elephant whom we have
 called Winnie. She was rescued from a mud hole by some African villagers and, as her
 mother had abandoned her, they took her home and George was informed. He went in
 the truck to fetch her having first made arrangements to have her housed in a shed on the
 Agriculture Department Experimental Farm here. He has written to the Game Dept
 Headquarters to inform the Game Warden and I do not know what her future will be, but
 in the meantime she is our pet. George is afraid she will not survive because she has
 had a very trying time. She stands about waist high and is a delightful creature and quite
 docile. Asian and African children as well as Europeans gather to watch her and George
 encourages them to bring fruit for her – especially pawpaws which she loves.
 Whilst we were there yesterday one of the local ladies came, very smartly
 dressed in a linen frock, silk stockings, and high heeled shoes. She watched fascinated
 whilst Winnie neatly split a pawpaw and removed the seeds with her trunk, before
 scooping out the pulp and putting it in her mouth. It was a particularly nice ripe pawpaw
 and Winnie enjoyed it so much that she stretched out her trunk for more. The lady took
 fright and started to run with Winnie after her, sticky trunk outstretched. Quite an
 entertaining sight. George managed to stop Winnie but not before she had left a gooey
 smear down the back of the immaculate frock.Eleanor. February 2, 2022 at 11:53 am #6265In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesFrom Tanganyika with Love continued ~ part 6 With thanks to Mike Rushby. Mchewe 6th June 1937 Dearest Family, Home again! We had an uneventful journey. Kate was as good as gold all the 
 way. We stopped for an hour at Bulawayo where we had to change trains but
 everything was simplified for me by a very pleasant man whose wife shared my
 compartment. Not only did he see me through customs but he installed us in our new
 train and his wife turned up to see us off with magazines for me and fruit and sweets for
 Kate. Very, very kind, don’t you think?Kate and I shared the compartment with a very pretty and gentle girl called 
 Clarice Simpson. She was very worried and upset because she was going home to
 Broken Hill in response to a telegram informing her that her young husband was
 dangerously ill from Blackwater Fever. She was very helpful with Kate whose
 cheerfulness helped Clarice, I think, though I, quite unintentionally was the biggest help
 at the end of our journey. Remember the partial dentures I had had made just before
 leaving Cape Town? I know I shall never get used to the ghastly things, I’ve had them
 two weeks now and they still wobble. Well this day I took them out and wrapped them
 in a handkerchief, but when we were packing up to leave the train I could find the
 handkerchief but no teeth! We searched high and low until the train had slowed down to
 enter Broken Hill station. Then Clarice, lying flat on the floor, spied the teeth in the dark
 corner under the bottom bunk. With much stretching she managed to retrieve the
 dentures covered in grime and fluff. My look of horror, when I saw them, made young
 Clarice laugh. She was met at the station by a very grave elderly couple. I do wonder
 how things turned out for her.I stayed overnight with Kate at the Great Northern Hotel, and we set off for 
 Mbeya by plane early in the morning. One of our fellow passengers was a young
 mother with a three week old baby. How ideas have changed since Ann was born. This
 time we had a smooth passage and I was the only passenger to get airsick. Although
 there were other women passengers it was a man once again, who came up and
 offered to help. Kate went off with him amiably and he entertained her until we touched
 down at Mbeya.George was there to meet us with a wonderful surprise, a little red two seater 
 Ford car. She is a bit battered and looks a bit odd because the boot has been
 converted into a large wooden box for carrying raw salt, but she goes like the wind.
 Where did George raise the cash to buy a car? Whilst we were away he found a small
 cave full of bat guano near a large cave which is worked by a man called Bob Sargent.
 As Sargent did not want any competition he bought the contents of the cave from
 George giving him the small car as part payment.It was lovely to return to our little home and find everything fresh and tidy and the 
 garden full of colour. But it was heartbreaking to go into the bedroom and see George’s
 precious forgotten boots still standing by his empty bed.With much love, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe 25th June 1937 Dearest Family, Last Friday George took Kate and me in the little red Ford to visit Mr Sargent’s 
 camp on the Songwe River which cuts the Mbeya-Mbosi road. Mr Sargent bought
 Hicky-Wood’s guano deposit and also our small cave and is making a good living out of
 selling the bat guano to the coffee farmers in this province. George went to try to interest
 him in a guano deposit near Kilwa in the Southern Province. Mr Sargent agreed to pay
 25 pounds to cover the cost of the car trip and pegging costs. George will make the trip
 to peg the claim and take samples for analysis. If the quality is sufficiently high, George
 and Mr Sargent will go into partnership. George will work the claim and ship out the
 guano from Kilwa which is on the coast of the Southern Province of Tanganyika. So now
 we are busy building castles in the air once more.On Saturday we went to Mbeya where George had to attend a meeting of the 
 Trout Association. In the afternoon he played in a cricket match so Kate and I spent the
 whole day with the wife of the new Superintendent of Police. They have a very nice
 new house with lawns and a sunken rose garden. Kate had a lovely romp with Kit, her
 three year old son.Mrs Wolten also has two daughters by a previous marriage. The elder girl said to 
 me, “Oh Mrs Rushby your husband is exactly like the strong silent type of man I
 expected to see in Africa but he is the only one I have seen. I think he looks exactly like
 those men in the ‘Barney’s Tobacco’ advertisements.”I went home with a huge pile of magazines to keep me entertained whilst 
 George is away on the Kilwa trip.Lots of love, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe 9th July 1937 Dearest Family, George returned on Monday from his Kilwa safari. He had an entertaining 
 tale to tell.Before he approached Mr Sargent about going shares in the Kilwa guano 
 deposit he first approached a man on the Lupa who had done very well out of a small
 gold reef. This man, however said he was not interested so you can imagine how
 indignant George was when he started on his long trip, to find himself being trailed by
 this very man and a co-driver in a powerful Ford V8 truck. George stopped his car and
 had some heated things to say – awful threats I imagine as to what would happen to
 anyone who staked his claim. Then he climbed back into our ancient little two seater and
 went off like a bullet driving all day and most of the night. As the others took turns in
 driving you can imagine what a feat it was for George to arrive in Kilwa ahead of them.
 When they drove into Kilwa he met them with a bright smile and a bit of bluff –
 quite justifiable under the circumstances I think. He said, you chaps can have a rest now,
 you’re too late.” He then whipped off and pegged the claim. he brought some samples
 of guano back but until it has been analysed he will not know whether the guano will be
 an economic proposition or not. George is not very hopeful. He says there is a good
 deal of sand mixed with the guano and that much of it was damp.The trip was pretty eventful for Kianda, our houseboy. The little two seater car 
 had been used by its previous owner for carting bags of course salt from his salt pans.
 For this purpose the dicky seat behind the cab had been removed, and a kind of box
 built into the boot of the car. George’s camp kit and provisions were packed into this
 open box and Kianda perched on top to keep an eye on the belongings. George
 travelled so fast on the rough road that at some point during the night Kianda was
 bumped off in the middle of the Game Reserve. George did not notice that he was
 missing until the next morning. He concluded, quite rightly as it happened, that Kianda
 would be picked up by the rival truck so he continued his journey and Kianda rejoined
 him at Kilwa.Believe it or not, the same thing happened on the way back but fortunately this 
 time George noticed his absence. He stopped the car and had just started back on his
 tracks when Kianda came running down the road still clutching the unlighted storm lamp
 which he was holding in his hand when he fell. The glass was not even cracked.
 We are finding it difficult just now to buy native chickens and eggs. There has
 been an epidemic amongst the poultry and one hesitates to eat the survivors. I have a
 brine tub in which I preserve our surplus meat but I need the chickens for soup.
 I hope George will be home for some months. He has arranged to take a Mr
 Blackburn, a wealthy fruit farmer from Elgin, Cape, on a hunting safari during September
 and October and that should bring in some much needed cash. Lillian Eustace has
 invited Kate and me to spend the whole of October with her in Tukuyu.
 I am so glad that you so much enjoy having Ann and George with you. We miss
 them dreadfully. Kate is a pretty little girl and such a little madam. You should hear the
 imperious way in which she calls the kitchenboy for her meals. “Boy Brekkis, Boy Lunch,
 and Boy Eggy!” are her three calls for the day. She knows no Ki-Swahili.Eleanor Mchewe 8th October 1937 Dearest Family, I am rapidly becoming as superstitious as our African boys. They say the wild 
 animals always know when George is away from home and come down to have their
 revenge on me because he has killed so many.I am being besieged at night by a most beastly leopard with a half grown cub. I 
 have grown used to hearing leopards grunt as they hunt in the hills at night but never
 before have I had one roaming around literally under the windows. It has been so hot at
 night lately that I have been sleeping with my bedroom door open onto the verandah. I
 felt quite safe because the natives hereabouts are law-abiding and in any case I always
 have a boy armed with a club sleeping in the kitchen just ten yards away. As an added
 precaution I also have a loaded .45 calibre revolver on my bedside table, and Fanny
 our bullterrier, sleeps on the mat by my bed. I am also looking after Barney, a fine
 Airedale dog belonging to the Costers. He slept on a mat by the open bedroom door
 near a dimly burning storm lamp.As usual I went to sleep with an easy mind on Monday night, but was awakened 
 in the early hours of Tuesday by the sound of a scuffle on the front verandah. The noise
 was followed by a scream of pain from Barney. I jumped out of bed and, grabbing the
 lamp with my left hand and the revolver in my right, I rushed outside just in time to see
 two animal figures roll over the edge of the verandah into the garden below. There they
 engaged in a terrific tug of war. Fortunately I was too concerned for Barney to be
 nervous. I quickly fired two shots from the revolver, which incidentally makes a noise like
 a cannon, and I must have startled the leopard for both animals, still locked together,
 disappeared over the edge of the terrace. I fired two more shots and in a few moments
 heard the leopard making a hurried exit through the dry leaves which lie thick under the
 wild fig tree just beyond the terrace. A few seconds later Barney appeared on the low
 terrace wall. I called his name but he made no move to come but stood with hanging
 head. In desperation I rushed out, felt blood on my hands when I touched him, so I
 picked him up bodily and carried him into the house. As I regained the verandah the boy
 appeared, club in hand, having been roused by the shots. He quickly grasped what had
 happened when he saw my blood saturated nightie. He fetched a bowl of water and a
 clean towel whilst I examined Barney’s wounds. These were severe, the worst being a
 gaping wound in his throat. I washed the gashes with a strong solution of pot permang
 and I am glad to say they are healing remarkably well though they are bound to leave
 scars. Fanny, very prudently, had taken no part in the fighting except for frenzied barking
 which she kept up all night. The shots had of course wakened Kate but she seemed
 more interested than alarmed and kept saying “Fanny bark bark, Mummy bang bang.
 Poor Barney lots of blood.”In the morning we inspected the tracks in the garden. There was a shallow furrow 
 on the terrace where Barney and the leopard had dragged each other to and fro and
 claw marks on the trunk of the wild fig tree into which the leopard climbed after I fired the
 shots. The affair was of course a drama after the Africans’ hearts and several of our
 shamba boys called to see me next day to make sympathetic noises and discuss the
 affair.I went to bed early that night hoping that the leopard had been scared off for 
 good but I must confess I shut all windows and doors. Alas for my hopes of a restful
 night. I had hardly turned down the lamp when the leopard started its terrifying grunting
 just under the bedroom windows. If only she would sniff around quietly I should not
 mind, but the noise is ghastly, something like the first sickening notes of a braying
 donkey, amplified here by the hills and the gorge which is only a stones throw from the
 bedroom. Barney was too sick to bark but Fanny barked loud enough for two and the more
 frantic she became the hungrier the leopard sounded. Kate of course woke up and this
 time she was frightened though I assured her that the noise was just a donkey having
 fun. Neither of us slept until dawn when the leopard returned to the hills. When we
 examined the tracks next morning we found that the leopard had been accompanied by
 a fair sized cub and that together they had prowled around the house, kitchen, and out
 houses, visiting especially the places to which the dogs had been during the day.
 As I feel I cannot bear many more of these nights, I am sending a note to the
 District Commissioner, Mbeya by the messenger who takes this letter to the post,
 asking him to send a game scout or an armed policeman to deal with the leopard.
 So don’t worry, for by the time this reaches you I feel sure this particular trouble
 will be over.Eleanor. Mchewe 17th October 1937 Dearest Family, More about the leopard I fear! My messenger returned from Mbeya to say that 
 the District Officer was on safari so he had given the message to the Assistant District
 Officer who also apparently left on safari later without bothering to reply to my note, so
 there was nothing for me to do but to send for the village Nimrod and his muzzle loader
 and offer him a reward if he could frighten away or kill the leopard.The hunter, Laza, suggested that he should sleep at the house so I went to bed 
 early leaving Laza and his two pals to make themselves comfortable on the living room
 floor by the fire. Laza was armed with a formidable looking muzzle loader, crammed I
 imagine with nuts and bolts and old rusty nails. One of his pals had a spear and the other
 a panga. This fellow was also in charge of the Petromax pressure lamp whose light was
 hidden under a packing case. I left the campaign entirely to Laza’s direction.
 As usual the leopard came at midnight stealing down from the direction of the
 kitchen and announcing its presence and position with its usual ghastly grunts. Suddenly
 pandemonium broke loose on the back verandah. I heard the roar of the muzzle loader
 followed by a vigourous tattoo beaten on an empty paraffin tin and I rushed out hoping
 to find the dead leopard. however nothing of the kind had happened except that the
 noise must have scared the beast because she did not return again that night. Next
 morning Laza solemnly informed me that, though he had shot many leopards in his day,
 this was no ordinary leopard but a “sheitani” (devil) and that as his gun was no good
 against witchcraft he thought he might as well retire from the hunt. Scared I bet, and I
 don’t blame him either.You can imagine my relief when a car rolled up that afternoon bringing Messers 
 Stewart and Griffiths, two farmers who live about 15 miles away, between here and
 Mbeya. They had a note from the Assistant District Officer asking them to help me and
 they had come to set up a trap gun in the garden. That night the leopard sniffed all
 around the gun and I had the added strain of waiting for the bang and wondering what I
 should do if the beast were only wounded. I conjured up horrible visions of the two little
 totos trotting up the garden path with the early morning milk and being horribly mauled,
 but I needn’t have worried because the leopard was far too wily to be caught that way.
 Two more ghastly nights passed and then I had another visitor, a Dr Jackson of
 the Tsetse Department on safari in the District. He listened sympathetically to my story
 and left his shotgun and some SSG cartridges with me and instructed me to wait until the
 leopard was pretty close and blow its b—– head off. It was good of him to leave his
 gun. George always says there are three things a man should never lend, ‘His wife, his
 gun and his dog.’ (I think in that order!)I felt quite cheered by Dr Jackson’s visit and sent
 once again for Laza last night and arranged a real show down. In the afternoon I draped
 heavy blankets over the living room windows to shut out the light of the pressure lamp
 and the four of us, Laza and his two stooges and I waited up for the leopard. When we
 guessed by her grunts that she was somewhere between the kitchen and the back door
 we all rushed out, first the boy with the panga and the lamp, next Laza with his muzzle
 loader, then me with the shotgun followed closely by the boy with the spear. What a
 farce! The lamp was our undoing. We were blinded by the light and did not even
 glimpse the leopard which made off with a derisive grunt. Laza said smugly that he knew
 it was hopeless to try and now I feel tired and discouraged too.This morning I sent a runner to Mbeya to order the hotel taxi for tomorrow and I 
 shall go to friends in Mbeya for a day or two and then on to Tukuyu where I shall stay
 with the Eustaces until George returns from Safari.Eleanor. Mchewe 18th November 1937 My darling Ann, Here we are back in our own home and how lovely it is to have Daddy back from 
 safari. Thank you very much for your letter. I hope by now you have got mine telling you
 how very much I liked the beautiful tray cloth you made for my birthday. I bet there are
 not many little girls of five who can embroider as well as you do, darling. The boy,
 Matafari, washes and irons it so carefully and it looks lovely on the tea tray.Daddy and I had some fun last night. I was in bed and Daddy was undressing 
 when we heard a funny scratching noise on the roof. I thought it was the leopard. Daddy
 quickly loaded his shotgun and ran outside. He had only his shirt on and he looked so
 funny. I grabbed the loaded revolver from the cupboard and ran after Dad in my nightie
 but after all the rush it was only your cat, Winnie, though I don’t know how she managed
 to make such a noise. We felt so silly, we laughed and laughed.Kate talks a lot now but in such a funny way you would laugh to her her. She 
 hears the houseboys call me Memsahib so sometimes instead of calling me Mummy
 she calls me “Oompaab”. She calls the bedroom a ‘bippon’ and her little behind she
 calls her ‘sittendump’. She loves to watch Mandawi’s cattle go home along the path
 behind the kitchen. Joseph your donkey, always leads the cows. He has a lazy life now.
 I am glad you had such fun on Guy Fawkes Day. You will be sad to leave
 Plumstead but I am sure you will like going to England on the big ship with granny Kate.
 I expect you will start school when you get to England and I am sure you will find that
 fun.God bless my dear little girl. Lots of love from Daddy and Kate, 
 and MummyMchewe 18th November 1937 Hello George Darling, Thank you for your lovely drawing of Daddy shooting an elephant. Daddy says 
 that the only thing is that you have drawn him a bit too handsome.I went onto the verandah a few minutes ago to pick a banana for Kate from the 
 bunch hanging there and a big hornet flew out and stung my elbow! There are lots of
 them around now and those stinging flies too. Kate wears thick corduroy dungarees so
 that she will not get her fat little legs bitten. She is two years old now and is a real little
 pickle. She loves running out in the rain so I have ordered a pair of red Wellingtons and a
 tiny umbrella from a Nairobi shop for her Christmas present.Fanny’s puppies have their eyes open now and have very sharp little teeth. 
 They love to nip each other. We are keeping the fiercest little one whom we call Paddy
 but are giving the others to friends. The coffee bushes are full of lovely white flowers
 and the bees and ants are very busy stealing their honey.Yesterday a troop of baboons came down the hill and Dad shot a big one to 
 scare the others off. They are a nuisance because they steal the maize and potatoes
 from the native shambas and then there is not enough food for the totos.
 Dad and I are very proud of you for not making a fuss when you went to the
 dentist to have that tooth out.Bye bye, my fine little son. 
 Three bags full of love from Kate, Dad and Mummy.Mchewe 12th February, 1938 Dearest Family, here is some news that will please you. George has been offered and has 
 accepted a job as Forester at Mbulu in the Northern Province of Tanganyika. George
 would have preferred a job as Game Ranger, but though the Game Warden, Philip
 Teare, is most anxious to have him in the Game Department, there is no vacancy at
 present. Anyway if one crops up later, George can always transfer from one
 Government Department to another. Poor George, he hates the idea of taking a job. He
 says that hitherto he has always been his own master and he detests the thought of
 being pushed around by anyone.Now however he has no choice. Our capitol is almost exhausted and the coffee 
 market shows no signs of improving. With three children and another on the way, he
 feels he simply must have a fixed income. I shall be sad to leave this little farm. I love
 our little home and we have been so very happy here, but my heart rejoices at the
 thought of overseas leave every thirty months. Now we shall be able to fetch Ann and
 George from England and in three years time we will all be together in Tanganyika once
 more.There is no sale for farms so we will just shut the house and keep on a very small 
 labour force just to keep the farm from going derelict. We are eating our hens but will
 take our two dogs, Fanny and Paddy with us.One thing I shall be glad to leave is that leopard. She still comes grunting around 
 at night but not as badly as she did before. I do not mind at all when George is here but
 until George was accepted for this forestry job I was afraid he might go back to the
 Diggings and I should once more be left alone to be cursed by the leopard’s attentions.
 Knowing how much I dreaded this George was most anxious to shoot the leopard and
 for weeks he kept his shotgun and a powerful torch handy at night.One night last week we woke to hear it grunting near the kitchen. We got up very 
 quietly and whilst George loaded the shotgun with SSG, I took the torch and got the
 heavy revolver from the cupboard. We crept out onto the dark verandah where George
 whispered to me to not switch on the torch until he had located the leopard. It was pitch
 black outside so all he could do was listen intently. And then of course I spoilt all his
 plans. I trod on the dog’s tin bowl and made a terrific clatter! George ordered me to
 switch on the light but it was too late and the leopard vanished into the long grass of the
 Kalonga, grunting derisively, or so it sounded.She never comes into the clearing now but grunts from the hillside just above it. Eleanor. Mbulu 18th March, 1938 Dearest Family, Journeys end at last. here we are at Mbulu, installed in our new quarters which are 
 as different as they possibly could be from our own cosy little home at Mchewe. We
 live now, my dears, in one wing of a sort of ‘Beau Geste’ fort but I’ll tell you more about
 it in my next letter. We only arrived yesterday and have not had time to look around.
 This letter will tell you just about our trip from Mbeya.We left the farm in our little red Ford two seater with all our portable goods and 
 chattels plus two native servants and the two dogs. Before driving off, George took one
 look at the flattened springs and declared that he would be surprised if we reached
 Mbeya without a breakdown and that we would never make Mbulu with the car so
 overloaded.However luck was with us. We reached Mbeya without mishap and at one of the 
 local garages saw a sturdy used Ford V8 boxbody car for sale. The garage agreed to
 take our small car as part payment and George drew on our little remaining capitol for the
 rest. We spent that night in the house of the Forest Officer and next morning set out in
 comfort for the Northern Province of Tanganyika.I had done the journey from Dodoma to Mbeya seven years before so was 
 familiar with the scenery but the road was much improved and the old pole bridges had
 been replaced by modern steel ones. Kate was as good as gold all the way. We
 avoided hotels and camped by the road and she found this great fun.
 The road beyond Dodoma was new to me and very interesting country, flat and
 dry and dusty, as little rain falls there. The trees are mostly thorn trees but here and there
 one sees a giant baobab, weird trees with fantastically thick trunks and fat squat branches
 with meagre foliage. The inhabitants of this area I found interesting though. They are
 called Wagogo and are a primitive people who ape the Masai in dress and customs
 though they are much inferior to the Masai in physique. They are also great herders of
 cattle which, rather surprisingly, appear to thrive in that dry area.The scenery alters greatly as one nears Babati, which one approaches by a high 
 escarpment from which one has a wonderful view of the Rift Valley. Babati township
 appears to be just a small group of Indian shops and shabby native houses, but I
 believe there are some good farms in the area. Though the little township is squalid,
 there is a beautiful lake and grand mountains to please the eye. We stopped only long
 enough to fill up with petrol and buy some foodstuffs. Beyond Babati there is a tsetse
 fly belt and George warned our two native servants to see that no tsetse flies settled on
 the dogs.We stopped for the night in a little rest house on the road about 80 miles from 
 Arusha where we were to spend a few days with the Forest Officer before going on to
 Mbulu. I enjoyed this section of the road very much because it runs across wide plains
 which are bounded on the West by the blue mountains of the Rift Valley wall. Here for
 the first time I saw the Masai on their home ground guarding their vast herds of cattle. I
 also saw their strange primitive hovels called Manyattas, with their thorn walled cattle
 bomas and lots of plains game – giraffe, wildebeest, ostriches and antelope. Kate was
 wildly excited and entranced with the game especially the giraffe which stood gazing
 curiously and unafraid of us, often within a few yards of the road.Finally we came across the greatest thrill of all, my first view of Mt Meru the extinct 
 volcano about 16,000 feet high which towers over Arusha township. The approach to
 Arusha is through flourishing coffee plantations very different alas from our farm at Mchewe. George says that at Arusha coffee growing is still a paying proposition
 because here the yield of berry per acre is much higher than in the Southern highlands
 and here in the North the farmers have not such heavy transport costs as the railway runs
 from Arusha to the port at Tanga.We stayed overnight at a rather second rate hotel but the food was good and we 
 had hot baths and a good nights rest. Next day Tom Lewis the Forest Officer, fetched
 us and we spent a few days camping in a tent in the Lewis’ garden having meals at their
 home. Both Tom and Lillian Lewis were most friendly. Tom lewis explained to George
 what his work in the Mbulu District was to be, and they took us camping in a Forest
 Reserve where Lillian and her small son David and Kate and I had a lovely lazy time
 amidst beautiful surroundings. Before we left for Mbulu, Lillian took me shopping to buy
 material for curtains for our new home. She described the Forest House at Mbulu to me
 and it sounded delightful but alas, when we reached Mbulu we discovered that the
 Assistant District Officer had moved into the Forest House and we were directed to the
 Fort or Boma. The night before we left Arusha for Mbulu it rained very heavily and the
 road was very treacherous and slippery due to the surface being of ‘black cotton’ soil
 which has the appearance and consistency of chocolate blancmange, after rain. To get to
 Mbulu we had to drive back in the direction of Dodoma for some 70 miles and then turn
 to the right and drive across plains to the Great Rift Valley Wall. The views from this
 escarpment road which climbs this wall are magnificent. At one point one looks down
 upon Lake Manyara with its brilliant white beaches of soda.The drive was a most trying one for George. We had no chains for the wheels 
 and several times we stuck in the mud and our two houseboys had to put grass and
 branches under the wheels to stop them from spinning. Quite early on in the afternoon
 George gave up all hope of reaching Mbulu that day and planned to spend the night in
 a little bush rest camp at Karatu. However at one point it looked as though we would not
 even reach this resthouse for late afternoon found us properly bogged down in a mess
 of mud at the bottom of a long and very steep hill. In spite of frantic efforts on the part of
 George and the two boys, all now very wet and muddy, the heavy car remained stuck.
 Suddenly five Masai men appeared through the bushes beside the road. They
 were all tall and angular and rather terrifying looking to me. Each wore only a blanket
 knotted over one shoulder and all were armed with spears. They lined up by the side of
 the road and just looked – not hostile but simply aloof and supercilious. George greeted
 them and said in Ki-Swahili, “Help to push and I will reward you.” But they said nothing,
 just drawing back imperceptibly to register disgust at the mere idea of manual labour.
 Their expressions said quite clearly “A Masai is a warrior and does not soil his hands.”
 George then did something which startled them I think, as much as me. He
 plucked their spears from their hands one by one and flung them into the back of the
 boxbody. “Now push!” he said, “And when we are safely out of the mud you shall have
 your spears back.” To my utter astonishment the Masai seemed to applaud George’s
 action. I think they admire courage in a man more than anything else. They pushed with a
 will and soon we were roaring up the long steep slope. “I can’t stop here” quoth George
 as up and up we went. The Masai were in mad pursuit with their blankets streaming
 behind. They took a very steep path which was a shortcut to the top. They are certainly
 amazing athletes and reached the top at the same time as the car. Their route of course
 was shorter but much more steep, yet they came up without any sign of fatigue to claim
 their spears and the money which George handed out with a friendly grin. The Masai
 took the whole episode in good heart and we parted on the most friendly terms.After a rather chilly night in the three walled shack, we started on the last lap of our 
 journey yesterday morning in bright weather and made the trip to Mbulu without incident.Eleanor. Mbulu 24th March, 1938 Dearest Family, Mbulu is an attractive station but living in this rather romantic looking fort has many 
 disadvantages. Our quarters make up one side of the fort which is built up around a
 hollow square. The buildings are single storied but very tall in the German manner and
 there is a tower on one corner from which the Union Jack flies. The tower room is our
 sitting room, and one has very fine views from the windows of the rolling country side.
 However to reach this room one has to climb a steep flight of cement steps from the
 court yard. Another disadvantage of this tower room is that there is a swarm of bees in
 the roof and the stray ones drift down through holes in the ceiling and buzz angrily
 against the window panes or fly around in a most menacing manner.Ours are the only private quarters in the Fort. Two other sides of the Fort are 
 used as offices, storerooms and court room and the fourth side is simply a thick wall with
 battlements and loopholes and a huge iron shod double door of enormous thickness
 which is always barred at sunset when the flag is hauled down. Two Police Askari always
 remain in the Fort on guard at night. The effect from outside the whitewashed fort is very
 romantic but inside it is hardly homely and how I miss my garden at Mchewe and the
 grass and trees.We have no privacy downstairs because our windows overlook the bare 
 courtyard which is filled with Africans patiently waiting to be admitted to the courtroom as
 witnesses or spectators. The outside windows which overlook the valley are heavily
 barred. I can only think that the Germans who built this fort must have been very scared
 of the local natives.Our rooms are hardly cosy and are furnished with typical heavy German pieces. 
 We have a vast bleak bedroom, a dining room and an enormous gloomy kitchen in
 which meals for the German garrison were cooked. At night this kitchen is alive with
 gigantic rats but fortunately they do not seem to care for the other rooms. To crown
 everything owls hoot and screech at night on the roof.On our first day here I wandered outside the fort walls with Kate and came upon a 
 neatly fenced plot enclosing the graves of about fifteen South African soldiers killed by
 the Germans in the 1914-18 war. I understand that at least one of theses soldiers died in
 the courtyard here. The story goes, that during the period in the Great War when this fort
 was occupied by a troop of South African Horse, a German named Siedtendorf
 appeared at the great barred door at night and asked to speak to the officer in command
 of the Troop. The officer complied with this request and the small shutter in the door was
 opened so that he could speak with the German. The German, however, had not come
 to speak. When he saw the exposed face of the officer, he fired, killing him, and
 escaped into the dark night. I had this tale on good authority but cannot vouch for it. I do
 know though, that there are two bullet holes in the door beside the shutter. An unhappy
 story to think about when George is away, as he is now, and the moonlight throws queer
 shadows in the court yard and the owls hoot.However though I find our quarters depressing, I like Mbulu itself very much. It is 
 rolling country, treeless except for the plantations of the Forestry Dept. The land is very
 fertile in the watered valleys but the grass on hills and plains is cropped to the roots by
 the far too numerous cattle and goats. There are very few Europeans on the station, only
 Mr Duncan, the District Officer, whose wife and children recently left for England, the
 Assistant District Officer and his wife, a bachelor Veterinary Officer, a Road Foreman and
 ourselves, and down in the village a German with an American wife and an elderly
 Irishman whom I have not met. The Government officials have a communal vegetable
 garden in the valley below the fort which keeps us well supplied with green stuff.Most afternoons George, Kate and I go for walks after tea. On Fridays there is a 
 little ceremony here outside the fort. In the late afternoon a little procession of small
 native schoolboys, headed by a drum and penny whistle band come marching up the
 road to a tune which sounds like ‘Two lovely black eyes”. They form up below our tower
 and as the flag is lowered for the day they play ‘God save the King’, and then march off
 again. It is quite a cheerful little ceremony.The local Africans are a skinny lot and, I should say, a poor tribe. They protect 
 themselves against the cold by wrapping themselves in cotton blankets or a strip of
 unbleached sheeting. This they drape over their heads, almost covering their faces and
 the rest is wrapped closely round their bodies in the manner of a shroud. A most
 depressing fashion. They live in very primitive comfortless houses. They simply make a
 hollow in the hillside and build a front wall of wattle and daub. Into this rude shelter at night
 go cattle and goats, men, women, and children.Mbulu village has the usual mud brick and wattle dukas and wattle and daub 
 houses. The chief trader is a Goan who keeps a surprisingly good variety of tinned
 foodstuffs and also sells hardware and soft goods.The Europeans here have been friendly but as you will have noted there are 
 only two other women on station and no children at all to be companions for Kate.Eleanor. Mbulu 20th June 1938 Dearest Family, Here we are on Safari with George at Babati where we are occupying a rest 
 house on the slopes of Ufiome Mountain. The slopes are a Forest Reserve and
 George is supervising the clearing of firebreaks in preparation for the dry weather. He
 goes off after a very early breakfast and returns home in the late afternoon so Kate and I
 have long lazy days.Babati is a pleasant spot and the resthouse is quite comfortable. It is about a mile 
 from the village which is just the usual collection of small mud brick and corrugated iron
 Indian Dukas. There are a few settlers in the area growing coffee, or going in for mixed
 farming but I don’t think they are doing very well. The farm adjoining the rest house is
 owned by Lord Lovelace but is run by a manager.George says he gets enough exercise clambering about all day on the mountain, 
 so Kate and I do our walking in the mornings when George is busy, and we all relax in
 the evenings when George returns from his field work. Kate’s favourite walk is to the big
 block of mtama (sorghum) shambas lower down the hill. There are huge swarms of tiny
 grain eating birds around waiting the chance to plunder the mtama, so the crops are
 watched from sunrise to sunset.Crude observation platforms have been erected for this purpose in the centre of 
 each field and the women and the young boys of the family concerned, take it in turn to
 occupy the platform and scare the birds. Each watcher has a sling and uses clods of
 earth for ammunition. The clod is placed in the centre of the sling which is then whirled
 around at arms length. Suddenly one end of the sling is released and the clod of earth
 flies out and shatters against the mtama stalks. The sling makes a loud whip like crack and
 the noise is quite startling and very effective in keeping the birds at a safe distance.Eleanor. Karatu 3rd July 1938 Dearest Family, Still on safari you see! We left Babati ten days ago and passed through Mbulu 
 on our way to this spot. We slept out of doors one night beside Lake Tiawa about eight
 miles from Mbulu. It was a peaceful spot and we enjoyed watching the reflection of the
 sunset on the lake and the waterhens and duck and pelicans settling down for the night.
 However it turned piercingly cold after sunset so we had an early supper and then all
 three of us lay down to sleep in the back of the boxbody (station wagon). It was a tight
 fit and a real case of ‘When Dad turns, we all turn.’Here at Karatu we are living in a grass hut with only three walls. It is rather sweet 
 and looks like the setting for a Nativity Play. Kate and I share the only camp bed and
 George and the dogs sleep on the floor. The air here is very fresh and exhilarating and
 we all feel very fit. George is occupied all day supervising the cutting of firebreaks
 around existing plantations and the forest reserve of indigenous trees. Our camp is on
 the hillside and below us lie the fertile wheat lands of European farmers.They are mostly Afrikaners, the descendants of the Boer families who were 
 invited by the Germans to settle here after the Boer War. Most of them are pro-British
 now and a few have called in here to chat to George about big game hunting. George
 gets on extremely well with them and recently attended a wedding where he had a
 lively time dancing at the reception. He likes the older people best as most are great
 individualists. One fine old man, surnamed von Rooyen, visited our camp. He is a Boer
 of the General Smuts type with spare figure and bearded face. George tells me he is a
 real patriarch with an enormous family – mainly sons. This old farmer fought against the
 British throughout the Boer War under General Smuts and again against the British in the
 German East Africa campaign when he was a scout and right hand man to Von Lettow. It
 is said that Von Lettow was able to stay in the field until the end of the Great War
 because he listened to the advise given to him by von Rooyen. However his dislike for
 the British does not extend to George as they have a mutual interest in big game
 hunting.Kate loves being on safari. She is now so accustomed to having me as her nurse 
 and constant companion that I do not know how she will react to paid help. I shall have to
 get someone to look after her during my confinement in the little German Red Cross
 hospital at Oldeani.George has obtained permission from the District Commissioner, for Kate and 
 me to occupy the Government Rest House at Oldeani from the end of July until the end
 of August when my baby is due. He will have to carry on with his field work but will join
 us at weekends whenever possible.Eleanor. Karatu 12th July 1938 Dearest Family, Not long now before we leave this camp. We have greatly enjoyed our stay 
 here in spite of the very chilly earl mornings and the nights when we sit around in heavy
 overcoats until our early bed time.Last Sunday I persuaded George to take Kate and me to the famous Ngoro- 
 Ngoro Crater. He was not very keen to do so because the road is very bumpy for
 anyone in my interesting condition but I feel so fit that I was most anxious to take this
 opportunity of seeing the enormous crater. We may never be in this vicinity again and in
 any case safari will not be so simple with a small baby.What a wonderful trip it was! The road winds up a steep escarpment from which 
 one gets a glorious birds eye view of the plains of the Great Rift Valley far, far below.
 The crater is immense. There is a road which skirts the rim in places and one has quite
 startling views of the floor of the crater about two thousand feet below.A camp for tourists has just been built in a clearing in the virgin forest. It is most 
 picturesque as the camp buildings are very neatly constructed log cabins with very high
 pitched thatched roofs. We spent about an hour sitting on the grass near the edge of the
 crater enjoying the sunshine and the sharp air and really awe inspiring view. Far below us
 in the middle of the crater was a small lake and we could see large herds of game
 animals grazing there but they were too far away to be impressive, even seen through
 George’s field glasses. Most appeared to be wildebeest and zebra but I also picked
 out buffalo. Much more exciting was my first close view of a wild elephant. George
 pointed him out to me as we approached the rest camp on the inward journey. He
 stood quietly under a tree near the road and did not seem to be disturbed by the car
 though he rolled a wary eye in our direction. On our return journey we saw him again at
 almost uncomfortably close quarters. We rounded a sharp corner and there stood the
 elephant, facing us and slap in the middle of the road. He was busily engaged giving
 himself a dust bath but spared time to give us an irritable look. Fortunately we were on a
 slight slope so George quickly switched off the engine and backed the car quietly round
 the corner. He got out of the car and loaded his rifle, just in case! But after he had finished
 his toilet the elephant moved off the road and we took our chance and passed without
 incident.One notices the steepness of the Ngoro-Ngoro road more on the downward 
 journey than on the way up. The road is cut into the side of the mountain so that one has
 a steep slope on one hand and a sheer drop on the other. George told me that a lorry
 coming down the mountain was once charged from behind by a rhino. On feeling and
 hearing the bash from behind the panic stricken driver drove off down the mountain as
 fast as he dared and never paused until he reached level ground at the bottom of the
 mountain. There was no sign of the rhino so the driver got out to examine his lorry and
 found the rhino horn embedded in the wooden tail end of the lorry. The horn had been
 wrenched right off!Happily no excitement of that kind happened to us. I have yet to see a rhino. Eleanor. Oldeani. 19th July 1938 Dearest Family, Greetings from a lady in waiting! Kate and I have settled down comfortably in the 
 new, solidly built Government Rest House which comprises one large living room and
 one large office with a connecting door. Outside there is a kitchen and a boys quarter.
 There are no resident Government officials here at Oldeani so the office is in use only
 when the District Officer from Mbulu makes his monthly visit. However a large Union
 Jack flies from a flagpole in the front of the building as a gentle reminder to the entirely
 German population of Oldeani that Tanganyika is now under British rule.There is quite a large community of German settlers here, most of whom are 
 engaged in coffee farming. George has visited several of the farms in connection with his
 forestry work and says the coffee plantations look very promising indeed. There are also
 a few German traders in the village and there is a large boarding school for German
 children and also a very pleasant little hospital where I have arranged to have the baby.
 Right next door to the Rest House is a General Dealers Store run by a couple named
 Schnabbe. The shop is stocked with drapery, hardware, china and foodstuffs all
 imported from Germany and of very good quality. The Schnabbes also sell local farm
 produce, beautiful fresh vegetables, eggs and pure rich milk and farm butter. Our meat
 comes from a German butchery and it is a great treat to get clean, well cut meat. The
 sausages also are marvellous and in great variety.The butcher is an entertaining character. When he called round looking for custom I 
 expected him to break out in a yodel any minute, as it was obvious from a glance that
 the Alps are his natural background. From under a green Tyrollean hat with feather,
 blooms a round beefy face with sparkling small eyes and such widely spaced teeth that
 one inevitably thinks of a garden rake. Enormous beefy thighs bulge from greasy
 lederhosen which are supported by the traditional embroidered braces. So far the
 butcher is the only cheery German, male or female, whom I have seen, and I have met
 most of the locals at the Schnabbe’s shop. Most of the men seem to have cultivated
 the grim Hitler look. They are all fanatical Nazis and one is usually greeted by a raised
 hand and Heil Hitler! All very theatrical. I always feel like crying in ringing tones ‘God
 Save the King’ or even ‘St George for England’. However the men are all very correct
 and courteous and the women friendly. The women all admire Kate and cry, “Ag, das
 kleine Englander.” She really is a picture with her rosy cheeks and huge grey eyes and
 golden curls. Kate is having a wonderful time playing with Manfried, the Scnabbe’s small
 son. Neither understands a word said by the other but that doesn’t seem to worry them.Before he left on safari, George took me to hospital for an examination by the 
 nurse, Sister Marianne. She has not been long in the country and knows very little
 English but is determined to learn and carried on an animated, if rather quaint,
 conversation with frequent references to a pocket dictionary. She says I am not to worry
 because there is not doctor here. She is a very experienced midwife and anyway in an
 emergency could call on the old retired Veterinary Surgeon for assistance.
 I asked sister Marianne whether she knew of any German woman or girl who
 would look after Kate whilst I am in hospital and today a very top drawer German,
 bearing a strong likeness to ‘Little Willie’, called and offered the services of his niece who
 is here on a visit from Germany. I was rather taken aback and said, “Oh no Baron, your
 niece would not be the type I had in mind. I’m afraid I cannot pay much for a companion.”
 However the Baron was not to be discouraged. He told me that his niece is seventeen
 but looks twenty, that she is well educated and will make a cheerful companion. Her
 father wishes her to learn to speak English fluently and that is why the Baron wished her
 to come to me as a house daughter. As to pay, a couple of pounds a month for pocket
 money and her keep was all he had in mind. So with some misgivings I agreed to take
 the niece on as a companion as from 1st August.Eleanor. Oldeani. 10th August 1938 Dearest Family, Never a dull moment since my young companion arrived. She is a striking looking 
 girl with a tall boyish figure and very short and very fine dark hair which she wears
 severely slicked back. She wears tweeds, no make up but has shiny rosy cheeks and
 perfect teeth – she also,inevitably, has a man friend and I have an uncomfortable
 suspicion that it is because of him that she was planted upon me. Upon second
 thoughts though, maybe it was because of her excessive vitality, or even because of
 her healthy appetite! The Baroness, I hear is in poor health and I can imagine that such
 abundant health and spirit must have been quite overpowering. The name is Ingeborg,
 but she is called Mouche, which I believe means Mouse. Someone in her family must
 have a sense of humour.Her English only needed practice and she now chatters fluently so that I know her 
 background and views on life. Mouche’s father is a personal friend of Goering. He was
 once a big noise in the German Airforce but is now connected with the car industry and
 travels frequently and intensively in Europe and America on business. Mouche showed
 me some snap shots of her family and I must say they look prosperous and charming.
 Mouche tells me that her father wants her to learn to speak English fluently so that
 she can get a job with some British diplomat in Cairo. I had immediate thought that I
 might be nursing a future Mata Hari in my bosom, but this was immediately extinguished
 when Mouche remarked that her father would like her to marry an Englishman. However
 it seems that the mere idea revolts her. “Englishmen are degenerates who swill whisky
 all day.” I pointed out that she had met George, who was a true blue Englishman, but
 was nevertheless a fine physical specimen and certainly didn’t drink all day. Mouche
 replied that George is not an Englishman but a hunter, as though that set him apart.
 Mouche is an ardent Hitler fan and an enthusiastic member of the Hitler Youth
 Movement. The house resounds with Hitler youth songs and when she is not singing,
 her gramophone is playing very stirring marching songs. I cannot understand a word,
 which is perhaps as well. Every day she does the most strenuous exercises watched
 with envy by me as my proportions are now those of a circus Big Top. Mouche eats a
 fantastic amount of meat and I feel it is a blessing that she is much admired by our
 Tyrollean butcher who now delivers our meat in person and adds as a token of his
 admiration some extra sausages for Mouche.I must confess I find her stimulating company as George is on safari most of the 
 time and my evenings otherwise would be lonely. I am a little worried though about
 leaving Kate here with Mouche when I go to hospital. The dogs and Kate have not taken
 to her. I am trying to prepare Kate for the separation but she says, “She’s not my
 mummy. You are my dear mummy, and I want you, I want you.” George has got
 permission from the Provincial Forestry Officer to spend the last week of August here at
 the Rest House with me and I only hope that the baby will be born during that time.
 Kate adores her dad and will be perfectly happy to remain here with him.One final paragraph about Mouche. I thought all German girls were domesticated 
 but not Mouche. I have Kesho-Kutwa here with me as cook and I have engaged a local
 boy to do the laundry. I however expected Mouche would take over making the
 puddings and pastry but she informed me that she can only bake a chocolate cake and
 absolutely nothing else. She said brightly however that she would do the mending. As
 there is none for her to do, she has rescued a large worn handkerchief of George’s and
 sits with her feet up listening to stirring gramophone records whilst she mends the
 handkerchief with exquisite darning.Eleanor. Oldeani. 20th August 1938 Dearest Family, Just after I had posted my last letter I received what George calls a demi official 
 letter from the District Officer informing me that I would have to move out of the Rest
 House for a few days as the Governor and his hangers on would be visiting Oldeani
 and would require the Rest House. Fortunately George happened to be here for a few
 hours and he arranged for Kate and Mouche and me to spend a few days at the
 German School as borders. So here I am at the school having a pleasant and restful
 time and much entertained by all the goings on.The school buildings were built with funds from Germany and the school is run on 
 the lines of a contemporary German school. I think the school gets a grant from the
 Tanganyika Government towards running expenses, but I am not sure. The school hall is
 dominated by a more than life sized oil painting of Adolf Hitler which, at present, is
 flanked on one side by the German Flag and on the other by the Union Jack. I cannot
 help feeling that the latter was put up today for the Governor’s visit today.
 The teachers are very amiable. We all meet at mealtimes, and though few of the
 teachers speak English, the ones who do are anxious to chatter. The headmaster is a
 scholarly man but obviously anti-British. He says he cannot understand why so many
 South Africans are loyal to Britain – or rather to England. “They conquered your country
 didn’t they?” I said that that had never occurred to me and that anyway I was mainly of
 Scots descent and that loyalty to the crown was natural to me. “But the English
 conquered the Scots and yet you are loyal to England. That I cannot understand.” “Well I
 love England,” said I firmly, ”and so do all British South Africans.” Since then we have
 stuck to English literature. Shakespeare, Lord Byron and Galsworthy seem to be the
 favourites and all, thank goodness, make safe topics for conversation.
 Mouche is in her element but Kate and I do not enjoy the food which is typically
 German and consists largely of masses of fat pork and sauerkraut and unfamiliar soups. I
 feel sure that the soup at lunch today had blobs of lemon curd in it! I also find most
 disconcerting the way that everyone looks at me and says, “Bon appetite”, with much
 smiling and nodding so I have to fight down my nausea and make a show of enjoying
 the meals.The teacher whose room adjoins mine is a pleasant woman and I take my 
 afternoon tea with her. She, like all the teachers, has a large framed photo of Hitler on her
 wall flanked by bracket vases of fresh flowers. One simply can’t get away from the man!
 Even in the dormitories each child has a picture of Hitler above the bed. Hitler accepting
 flowers from a small girl, or patting a small boy on the head. Even the children use the
 greeting ‘Heil Hitler’. These German children seem unnaturally prim when compared with
 my cheerful ex-pupils in South Africa but some of them are certainly very lovely to look
 at.Tomorrow Mouche, Kate and I return to our quarters in the Rest House and in a 
 few days George will join us for a week.Eleanor. Oldeani Hospital. 9th September 1938 Dearest Family, You will all be delighted to hear that we have a second son, whom we have 
 named John. He is a darling, so quaint and good. He looks just like a little old man with a
 high bald forehead fringed around the edges with a light brown fluff. George and I call
 him Johnny Jo because he has a tiny round mouth and a rather big nose and reminds us
 of A.A.Milne’s ‘Jonathan Jo has a mouth like an O’ , but Kate calls him, ‘My brother John’.
 George was not here when he was born on September 5th, just two minutes
 before midnight. He left on safari on the morning of the 4th and, of course, that very night
 the labour pains started. Fortunately Kate was in bed asleep so Mouche walked with
 me up the hill to the hospital where I was cheerfully received by Sister Marianne who
 had everything ready for the confinement. I was lucky to have such an experienced
 midwife because this was a breech birth and sister had to manage single handed. As
 there was no doctor present I was not allowed even a sniff of anaesthetic. Sister slaved
 away by the light of a pressure lamp endeavouring to turn the baby having first shoved
 an inverted baby bath under my hips to raise them.What a performance! Sister Marianne was very much afraid that she might not be 
 able to save the baby and great was our relief when at last she managed to haul him out
 by the feet. One slap and the baby began to cry without any further attention so Sister
 wrapped him up in a blanket and took Johnny to her room for the night. I got very little
 sleep but was so thankful to have the ordeal over that I did not mind even though I
 heard a hyaena cackling and calling under my window in a most evil way.
 When Sister brought Johnny to me in the early morning I stared in astonishment.
 Instead of dressing him in one of his soft Viyella nighties, she had dressed him in a short
 sleeved vest of knitted cotton with a cotton cloth swayed around his waist sarong
 fashion. When I protested, “But Sister why is the baby not dressed in his own clothes?”
 She answered firmly, “I find it is not allowed. A baby’s clotheses must be boiled and I
 cannot boil clotheses of wool therefore your baby must wear the clotheses of the Red
 Cross.”It was the same with the bedding. Poor Johnny lies all day in a deep wicker 
 basket with a detachable calico lining. There is no pillow under his head but a vast kind of
 calico covered pillow is his only covering. There is nothing at all cosy and soft round my
 poor baby. I said crossly to the Sister, “As every thing must be so sterile, I wonder you
 don’t boil me too.” This she ignored.When my message reached George he dashed back to visit us. Sister took him 
 first to see the baby and George was astonished to see the baby basket covered by a
 sheet. “She has the poor little kid covered up like a bloody parrot,” he told me. So I
 asked him to go at once to buy a square of mosquito netting to replace the sheet.
 Kate is quite a problem. She behaves like an Angel when she is here in my
 room but is rebellious when Sister shoos her out. She says she “Hates the Nanny”
 which is what she calls Mouche. Unfortunately it seems that she woke before midnight
 on the night Johnny Jo was born to find me gone and Mouche in my bed. According to
 Mouche, Kate wept all night and certainly when she visited me in the early morning
 Kate’s face was puffy with crying and she clung to me crying “Oh my dear mummy, why
 did you go away?” over and over again. Sister Marianne was touched and suggested
 that Mouche and Kate should come to the hospital as boarders as I am the only patient
 at present and there is plenty of room. Luckily Kate does not seem at all jealous of the
 baby and it is a great relief to have here here under my eye.Eleanor. January 28, 2022 at 9:30 pm #6264In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesFrom Tanganyika with Love continued ~ part 5 With thanks to Mike Rushby. Chunya 16th December 1936 Dearest Family, Since last I wrote I have visited Chunya and met several of the diggers wives. 
 On the whole I have been greatly disappointed because there is nothing very colourful
 about either township or women. I suppose I was really expecting something more like
 the goldrush towns and women I have so often seen on the cinema screen.
 Chunya consists of just the usual sun-dried brick Indian shops though there are
 one or two double storied buildings. Most of the life in the place centres on the
 Goldfields Hotel but we did not call there. From the store opposite I could hear sounds
 of revelry though it was very early in the afternoon. I saw only one sight which was quite
 new to me, some elegantly dressed African women, with high heels and lipsticked
 mouths teetered by on their way to the silk store. “Native Tarts,” said George in answer
 to my enquiry.Several women have called on me and when I say ‘called’ I mean called. I have 
 grown so used to going without stockings and wearing home made dresses that it was
 quite a shock to me to entertain these ladies dressed to the nines in smart frocks, silk
 stockings and high heeled shoes, handbags, makeup and whatnot. I feel like some
 female Rip van Winkle. Most of the women have a smart line in conversation and their
 talk and views on life would make your nice straight hair curl Mummy. They make me feel
 very unsophisticated and dowdy but George says he has a weakness for such types
 and I am to stay exactly as I am. I still do not use any makeup. George says ‘It’s all right
 for them. They need it poor things, you don’t.” Which, though flattering, is hardly true.
 I prefer the men visitors, though they also are quite unlike what I had expected
 diggers to be. Those whom George brings home are all well educated and well
 groomed and I enjoy listening to their discussion of the world situation, sport and books.
 They are extremely polite to me and gentle with the children though I believe that after a
 few drinks at the pub tempers often run high. There were great arguments on the night
 following the abdication of Edward VIII. Not that the diggers were particularly attached to
 him as a person, but these men are all great individualists and believe in freedom of
 choice. George, rather to my surprise, strongly supported Edward. I did not.Many of the diggers have wireless sets and so we keep up to date with the 
 news. I seldom leave camp. I have my hands full with the three children during the day
 and, even though Janey is a reliable ayah, I would not care to leave the children at night
 in these grass roofed huts. Having experienced that fire on the farm, I know just how
 unlikely it would be that the children would be rescued in time in case of fire. The other
 women on the diggings think I’m crazy. They leave their children almost entirely to ayahs
 and I must confess that the children I have seen look very well and happy. The thing is
 that I simply would not enjoy parties at the hotel or club, miles away from the children
 and I much prefer to stay at home with a book.I love hearing all about the parties from George who likes an occasional ‘boose 
 up’ with the boys and is terribly popular with everyone – not only the British but with the
 Germans, Scandinavians and even the Afrikaans types. One Afrikaans woman said “Jou
 man is ‘n man, al is hy ‘n Engelsman.” Another more sophisticated woman said, “George
 is a handsome devil. Aren’t you scared to let him run around on his own?” – but I’m not. I
 usually wait up for George with sandwiches and something hot to drink and that way I
 get all the news red hot.There is very little gold coming in. The rains have just started and digging is 
 temporarily at a standstill. It is too wet for dry blowing and not yet enough water for
 panning and sluicing. As this camp is some considerable distance from the claims, all I see of the process is the weighing of the daily taking of gold dust and tiny nuggets.
 Unless our luck changes I do not think we will stay on here after John Molteno returns.
 George does not care for the life and prefers a more constructive occupation.
 Ann and young George still search optimistically for gold. We were all saddened
 last week by the death of Fanny, our bull terrier. She went down to the shopping centre
 with us and we were standing on the verandah of a store when a lorry passed with its
 canvas cover flapping. This excited Fanny who rushed out into the street and the back
 wheel of the lorry passed right over her, killing her instantly. Ann was very shocked so I
 soothed her by telling her that Fanny had gone to Heaven. When I went to bed that
 night I found Ann still awake and she asked anxiously, “Mummy, do you think God
 remembered to give Fanny her bone tonight?”Much love to all, 
 Eleanor.Itewe, Chunya 23rd December 1936 Dearest Family, Your Christmas parcel arrived this morning. Thank you very much for all the 
 clothing for all of us and for the lovely toys for the children. George means to go hunting
 for a young buffalo this afternoon so that we will have some fresh beef for Christmas for
 ourselves and our boys and enough for friends too.I had a fright this morning. Ann and Georgie were, as usual, searching for gold 
 whilst I sat sewing in the living room with Kate toddling around. She wandered through
 the curtained doorway into the store and I heard her playing with the paraffin pump. At
 first it did not bother me because I knew the tin was empty but after ten minutes or so I
 became irritated by the noise and went to stop her. Imagine my horror when I drew the
 curtain aside and saw my fat little toddler fiddling happily with the pump whilst, curled up
 behind the tin and clearly visible to me lay the largest puffadder I have ever seen.
 Luckily I acted instinctively and scooped Kate up from behind and darted back into the
 living room without disturbing the snake. The houseboy and cook rushed in with sticks
 and killed the snake and then turned the whole storeroom upside down to make sure
 there were no more.I have met some more picturesque characters since I last wrote. One is a man 
 called Bishop whom George has known for many years having first met him in the
 Congo. I believe he was originally a sailor but for many years he has wandered around
 Central Africa trying his hand at trading, prospecting, a bit of elephant hunting and ivory
 poaching. He is now keeping himself by doing ‘Sign Writing”. Bish is a gentle and
 dignified personality. When we visited his camp he carefully dusted a seat for me and
 called me ‘Marm’, quite ye olde world. The only thing is he did spit.Another spitter is the Frenchman in a neighbouring camp. He is in bed with bad 
 rheumatism and George has been going across twice a day to help him and cheer him
 up. Once when George was out on the claim I went across to the Frenchman’s camp in
 response to an SOS, but I think he was just lonely. He showed me snapshots of his
 two daughters, lovely girls and extremely smart, and he chatted away telling me his life
 history. He punctuated his remarks by spitting to right and left of the bed, everywhere in
 fact, except actually at me.George took me and the children to visit a couple called Bert and Hilda Farham. 
 They have a small gold reef which is worked by a very ‘Heath Robinson’ type of
 machinery designed and erected by Bert who is reputed to be a clever engineer though
 eccentric. He is rather a handsome man who always looks very spruce and neat and
 wears a Captain Kettle beard. Hilda is from Johannesburg and quite a character. She
 has a most generous figure and literally masses of beetroot red hair, but she also has a
 warm deep voice and a most generous disposition. The Farhams have built
 themselves a more permanent camp than most. They have a brick cottage with proper
 doors and windows and have made it attractive with furniture contrived from petrol
 boxes. They have no children but Hilda lavishes a great deal of affection on a pet
 monkey. Sometimes they do quite well out of their gold and then they have a terrific
 celebration at the Club or Pub and Hilda has an orgy of shopping. At other times they
 are completely broke but Hilda takes disasters as well as triumphs all in her stride. She
 says, “My dear, when we’re broke we just live on tea and cigarettes.”I have met a young woman whom I would like as a friend. She has a dear little 
 baby, but unfortunately she has a very wet husband who is also a dreadful bore. I can’t
 imagine George taking me to their camp very often. When they came to visit us George
 just sat and smoked and said,”Oh really?” to any remark this man made until I felt quite
 hysterical. George looks very young and fit and the children are lively and well too. I ,
 however, am definitely showing signs of wear and tear though George says,
 “Nonsense, to me you look the same as you always did.” This I may say, I do not
 regard as a compliment to the young Eleanor.Anyway, even though our future looks somewhat unsettled, we are all together 
 and very happy.With love, 
 Eleanor.Itewe, Chunya 30th December 1936 Dearest Family, We had a very cheery Christmas. The children loved the toys and are so proud 
 of their new clothes. They wore them when we went to Christmas lunch to the
 Cresswell-Georges. The C-Gs have been doing pretty well lately and they have a
 comfortable brick house and a large wireless set. The living room was gaily decorated
 with bought garlands and streamers and balloons. We had an excellent lunch cooked by
 our ex cook Abel who now works for the Cresswell-Georges. We had turkey with
 trimmings and plum pudding followed by nuts and raisons and chocolates and sweets
 galore. There was also a large variety of drinks including champagne!There were presents for all of us and, in addition, Georgie and Ann each got a 
 large tin of chocolates. Kate was much admired. She was a picture in her new party frock
 with her bright hair and rosy cheeks. There were other guests beside ourselves and
 they were already there having drinks when we arrived. Someone said “What a lovely
 child!” “Yes” said George with pride, “She’s a Marie Stopes baby.” “Truby King!” said I
 quickly and firmly, but too late to stop the roar of laughter.Our children played amicably with the C-G’s three, but young George was 
 unusually quiet and surprised me by bringing me his unopened tin of chocolates to keep
 for him. Normally he is a glutton for sweets. I might have guessed he was sickening for
 something. That night he vomited and had diarrhoea and has had an upset tummy and a
 slight temperature ever since.Janey is also ill. She says she has malaria and has taken to her bed. I am dosing 
 her with quinine and hope she will soon be better as I badly need her help. Not only is
 young George off his food and peevish but Kate has a cold and Ann sore eyes and
 they all want love and attention. To complicate things it has been raining heavily and I
 must entertain the children indoors.Eleanor. Itewe, Chunya 19th January 1937 Dearest Family, So sorry I have not written before but we have been in the wars and I have had neither 
 the time nor the heart to write. However the worst is now over. Young George and
 Janey are both recovering from Typhoid Fever. The doctor had Janey moved to the
 native hospital at Chunya but I nursed young George here in the camp.As I told you young George’s tummy trouble started on Christmas day. At first I 
 thought it was only a protracted bilious attack due to eating too much unaccustomed rich
 food and treated him accordingly but when his temperature persisted I thought that the
 trouble might be malaria and kept him in bed and increased the daily dose of quinine.
 He ate less and less as the days passed and on New Years Day he seemed very
 weak and his stomach tender to the touch.George fetched the doctor who examined small George and said he had a very 
 large liver due no doubt to malaria. He gave the child injections of emertine and quinine
 and told me to give young George frequent and copious drinks of water and bi-carb of
 soda. This was more easily said than done. Young George refused to drink this mixture
 and vomited up the lime juice and water the doctor had suggested as an alternative.
 The doctor called every day and gave George further injections and advised me
 to give him frequent sips of water from a spoon. After three days the child was very
 weak and weepy but Dr Spiers still thought he had malaria. During those anxious days I
 also worried about Janey who appeared to be getting worse rather that better and on
 January the 3rd I asked the doctor to look at her. The next thing I knew, the doctor had
 put Janey in his car and driven her off to hospital. When he called next morning he
 looked very grave and said he wished to talk to my husband. I said that George was out
 on the claim but if what he wished to say concerned young George’s condition he might
 just as well tell me.With a good deal of reluctance Dr Spiers then told me that Janey showed all the 
 symptoms of Typhoid Fever and that he was very much afraid that young George had
 contracted it from her. He added that George should be taken to the Mbeya Hospital
 where he could have the professional nursing so necessary in typhoid cases. I said “Oh
 no,I’d never allow that. The child had never been away from his family before and it
 would frighten him to death to be sick and alone amongst strangers.” Also I was sure that
 the fifty mile drive over the mountains in his weak condition would harm him more than
 my amateur nursing would. The doctor returned to the camp that afternoon to urge
 George to send our son to hospital but George staunchly supported my argument that
 young George would stand a much better chance of recovery if we nursed him at home.
 I must say Dr Spiers took our refusal very well and gave young George every attention
 coming twice a day to see him.For some days the child was very ill. He could not keep down any food or liquid 
 in any quantity so all day long, and when he woke at night, I gave him a few drops of
 water at a time from a teaspoon. His only nourishment came from sucking Macintosh’s
 toffees. Young George sweated copiously especially at night when it was difficult to
 change his clothes and sponge him in the draughty room with the rain teeming down
 outside. I think I told you that the bedroom is a sort of shed with only openings in the wall
 for windows and doors, and with one wall built only a couple of feet high leaving a six
 foot gap for air and light. The roof leaked and the damp air blew in but somehow young
 George pulled through.Only when he was really on the mend did the doctor tell us that whilst he had 
 been attending George, he had also been called in to attend to another little boy of the same age who also had typhoid. He had been called in too late and the other little boy,
 an only child, had died. Young George, thank God, is convalescent now, though still on a
 milk diet. He is cheerful enough when he has company but very peevish when left
 alone. Poor little lad, he is all hair, eyes, and teeth, or as Ann says” Georgie is all ribs ribs
 now-a-days Mummy.” He shares my room, Ann and Kate are together in the little room.
 Anyway the doctor says he should be up and around in about a week or ten days time.
 We were all inoculated against typhoid on the day the doctor made the diagnosis
 so it is unlikely that any of us will develop it. Dr Spiers was most impressed by Ann’s
 unconcern when she was inoculated. She looks gentle and timid but has always been
 very brave. Funny thing when young George was very ill he used to wail if I left the
 room, but now that he is convalescent he greatly prefers his dad’s company. So now I
 have been able to take the girls for walks in the late afternoons whilst big George
 entertains small George. This he does with the minimum of effort, either he gets out
 cartons of ammunition with which young George builds endless forts, or else he just sits
 beside the bed and cleans one of his guns whilst small George watches with absorbed
 attention.The Doctor tells us that Janey is also now convalescent. He says that exhusband 
 Abel has been most attentive and appeared daily at the hospital with a tray of
 food that made his, the doctor’s, mouth water. All I dare say, pinched from Mrs
 Cresswell-George.I’ll write again soon. Lots of love to all, 
 Eleanor.Chunya 29th January 1937 Dearest Family, Georgie is up and about but still tires very easily. At first his legs were so weak 
 that George used to carry him around on his shoulders. The doctor says that what the
 child really needs is a long holiday out of the Tropics so that Mrs Thomas’ offer, to pay all
 our fares to Cape Town as well as lending us her seaside cottage for a month, came as
 a Godsend. Luckily my passport is in order. When George was in Mbeya he booked
 seats for the children and me on the first available plane. We will fly to Broken Hill and go
 on to Cape Town from there by train.Ann and George are wildly thrilled at the idea of flying but I am not. I remember 
 only too well how airsick I was on the old Hannibal when I flew home with the baby Ann.
 I am longing to see you all and it will be heaven to give the children their first seaside
 holiday.I mean to return with Kate after three months but, if you will have him, I shall leave 
 George behind with you for a year. You said you would all be delighted to have Ann so
 I do hope you will also be happy to have young George. Together they are no trouble
 at all. They amuse themselves and are very independent and loveable.
 George and I have discussed the matter taking into consideration the letters from
 you and George’s Mother on the subject. If you keep Ann and George for a year, my
 mother-in-law will go to Cape Town next year and fetch them. They will live in England
 with her until they are fit enough to return to the Tropics. After the children and I have left
 on this holiday, George will be able to move around and look for a job that will pay
 sufficiently to enable us to go to England in a few years time to fetch our children home.
 We both feel very sad at the prospect of this parting but the children’s health
 comes before any other consideration. I hope Kate will stand up better to the Tropics.
 She is plump and rosy and could not look more bonny if she lived in a temperate
 climate.We should be with you in three weeks time! Very much love, 
 Eleanor.Broken Hill, N Rhodesia 11th February 1937 Dearest Family, Well here we are safe and sound at the Great Northern Hotel, Broken Hill, all 
 ready to board the South bound train tonight.We were still on the diggings on Ann’s birthday, February 8th, when George had 
 a letter from Mbeya to say that our seats were booked on the plane leaving Mbeya on
 the 10th! What a rush we had packing up. Ann was in bed with malaria so we just
 bundled her up in blankets and set out in John Molteno’s car for the farm. We arrived that
 night and spent the next day on the farm sorting things out. Ann and George wanted to
 take so many of their treasures and it was difficult for them to make a small selection. In
 the end young George’s most treasured possession, his sturdy little boots, were left
 behind.Before leaving home on the morning of the tenth I took some snaps of Ann and 
 young George in the garden and one of them with their father. He looked so sad. After
 putting us on the plane, George planned to go to the fishing camp for a day or two
 before returning to the empty house on the farm.John Molteno returned from the Cape by plane just before we took off, so he 
 will take over the running of his claims once more. I told John that I dreaded the plane trip
 on account of air sickness so he gave me two pills which I took then and there. Oh dear!
 How I wished later that I had not done so. We had an extremely bumpy trip and
 everyone on the plane was sick except for small George who loved every moment.
 Poor Ann had a dreadful time but coped very well and never complained. I did not
 actually puke until shortly before we landed at Broken Hill but felt dreadfully ill all the way.
 Kate remained rosy and cheerful almost to the end. She sat on my lap throughout the
 trip because, being under age, she travelled as baggage and was not entitled to a seat.
 Shortly before we reached Broken Hill a smartly dressed youngish man came up
 to me and said, “You look so poorly, please let me take the baby, I have children of my
 own and know how to handle them.” Kate made no protest and off they went to the
 back of the plane whilst I tried to relax and concentrate on not getting sick. However,
 within five minutes the man was back. Kate had been thoroughly sick all over his collar
 and jacket.I took Kate back on my lap and then was violently sick myself, so much so that 
 when we touched down at Broken Hill I was unable to speak to the Immigration Officer.
 He was so kind. He sat beside me until I got my diaphragm under control and then
 drove me up to the hotel in his own car.We soon recovered of course and ate a hearty dinner. This morning after 
 breakfast I sallied out to look for a Bank where I could exchange some money into
 Rhodesian and South African currency and for the Post Office so that I could telegraph
 to George and to you. What a picnic that trip was! It was a terribly hot day and there was
 no shade. By the time we had done our chores, the children were hot, and cross, and
 tired and so indeed was I. As I had no push chair for Kate I had to carry her and she is
 pretty heavy for eighteen months. George, who is still not strong, clung to my free arm
 whilst Ann complained bitterly that no one was helping her.Eventually Ann simply sat down on the pavement and declared that she could 
 not go another step, whereupon George of course decided that he also had reached his
 limit and sat down too. Neither pleading no threats would move them so I had to resort
 to bribery and had to promise that when we reached the hotel they could have cool
 drinks and ice-cream. This promise got the children moving once more but I am determined that nothing will induce me to stir again until the taxi arrives to take us to the
 station.This letter will go by air and will reach you before we do. How I am longing for 
 journeys end.With love to you all, 
 Eleanor.Leaving home 10th February 1937, George Gilman Rushby with Ann and Georgie (Mike) Rushby:  NOTE 
 We had a very warm welcome to the family home at Plumstead Cape Town.
 After ten days with my family we moved to Hout Bay where Mrs Thomas lent us her
 delightful seaside cottage. She also provided us with two excellent maids so I had
 nothing to do but rest and play on the beach with the children.After a month at the sea George had fully recovered his health though not his 
 former gay spirits. After another six months with my parents I set off for home with Kate,
 leaving Ann and George in my parent’s home under the care of my elder sister,
 Marjorie.One or two incidents during that visit remain clearly in my memory. Our children 
 had never met elderly people and were astonished at the manifestations of age. One
 morning an elderly lady came around to collect church dues. She was thin and stooped
 and Ann surveyed her with awe. She turned to me with a puzzled expression and
 asked in her clear voice, “Mummy, why has that old lady got a moustache – oh and a
 beard?’ The old lady in question was very annoyed indeed and said, “What a rude little
 girl.” Ann could not understand this, she said, “But Mummy, I only said she had a
 moustache and a beard and she has.” So I explained as best I could that when people
 have defects of this kind they are hurt if anyone mentions them.A few days later a strange young woman came to tea. I had been told that she 
 had a most disfiguring birthmark on her cheek and warned Ann that she must not
 comment on it. Alas! with the kindest intentions Ann once again caused me acute
 embarrassment. The young woman was hardly seated when Ann went up to her and
 gently patted the disfiguring mark saying sweetly, “Oh, I do like this horrible mark on your
 face.”I remember also the afternoon when Kate and George were christened. My 
 mother had given George a white silk shirt for the occasion and he wore it with intense
 pride. Kate was baptised first without incident except that she was lost in admiration of a
 gold bracelet given her that day by her Godmother and exclaimed happily, “My
 bangle, look my bangle,” throughout the ceremony. When George’s turn came the
 clergyman held his head over the font and poured water on George’s forehead. Some
 splashed on his shirt and George protested angrily, “Mum, he has wet my shirt!” over
 and over again whilst I led him hurriedly outside.My last memory of all is at the railway station. The time had come for Kate and 
 me to get into our compartment. My sisters stood on the platform with Ann and George.
 Ann was resigned to our going, George was not so, at the last moment Sylvia, my
 younger sister, took him off to see the engine. The whistle blew and I said good-bye to
 my gallant little Ann. “Mummy”, she said urgently to me, “Don’t forget to wave to
 George.”And so I waved good-bye to my children, never dreaming that a war would 
 intervene and it would be eight long years before I saw them again.January 28, 2022 at 8:17 pm #6263In reply to: The Elusive Samuel Housley and Other Family StoriesFrom Tanganyika with Love continued ~ part 4 With thanks to Mike Rushby. Mchewe Estate. 31st January 1936 Dearest Family, Life is very quiet just now. Our neighbours have left and I miss them all especially 
 Joni who was always a great bearer of news. We also grew fond of his Swedish
 brother-in-law Max, whose loud ‘Hodi’ always brought a glad ‘Karibu’ from us. His wife,
 Marion, I saw less often. She is not strong and seldom went visiting but has always
 been friendly and kind and ready to share her books with me.Ann’s birthday is looming ahead and I am getting dreadfully anxious that her 
 parcels do not arrive in time. I am delighted that you were able to get a good head for
 her doll, dad, but horrified to hear that it was so expensive. You would love your
 ‘Charming Ann’. She is a most responsible little soul and seems to have outgrown her
 mischievous ways. A pity in a way, I don’t want her to grow too serious. You should see
 how thoroughly Ann baths and towels herself. She is anxious to do Georgie and Kate
 as well.I did not mean to teach Ann to write until after her fifth birthday but she has taught 
 herself by copying the large print in newspaper headlines. She would draw a letter and
 ask me the name and now I find that at four Ann knows the whole alphabet. The front
 cement steps is her favourite writing spot. She uses bits of white clay we use here for
 whitewashing.Coffee prices are still very low and a lot of planters here and at Mbosi are in a 
 mess as they can no longer raise mortgages on their farms or get advances from the
 Bank against their crops. We hear many are leaving their farms to try their luck on the
 Diggings.George is getting fed up too. The snails are back on the shamba and doing 
 frightful damage. Talk of the plagues of Egypt! Once more they are being collected in
 piles and bashed into pulp. The stench on the shamba is frightful! The greybeards in the
 village tell George that the local Chief has put a curse on the farm because he is angry
 that the Government granted George a small extension to the farm two years ago! As
 the Chief was consulted at the time and was agreeable this talk of a curse is nonsense
 but goes to show how the uneducated African put all disasters down to witchcraft.With much love, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe Estate. 9th February 1936 Dearest Family, Ann’s birthday yesterday was not quite the gay occasion we had hoped. The 
 seventh was mail day so we sent a runner for the mail, hoping against hope that your
 parcel containing the dolls head had arrived. The runner left for Mbeya at dawn but, as it
 was a very wet day, he did not return with the mail bag until after dark by which time Ann
 was fast asleep. My heart sank when I saw the parcel which contained the dolls new
 head. It was squashed quite flat. I shed a few tears over that shattered head, broken
 quite beyond repair, and George felt as bad about it as I did. The other parcel arrived in
 good shape and Ann loves her little sewing set, especially the thimble, and the nursery
 rhymes are a great success.Ann woke early yesterday and began to open her parcels. She said “But 
 Mummy, didn’t Barbara’s new head come?” So I had to show her the fragments.
 Instead of shedding the flood of tears I expected, Ann just lifted the glass eyes in her
 hand and said in a tight little voice “Oh poor Barbara.” George saved the situation. as
 usual, by saying in a normal voice,”Come on Ann, get up and lets play your new
 records.” So we had music and sweets before breakfast. Later I removed Barbara’s
 faded old blond wig and gummed on the glossy new brown one and Ann seems quite
 satisfied.Last night, after the children were tucked up in bed, we discussed our financial 
 situation. The coffee trees that have survived the plagues of borer beetle, mealie bugs
 and snails look strong and fine, but George says it will be years before we make a living
 out of the farm. He says he will simply have to make some money and he is leaving for
 the Lupa on Saturday to have a look around on the Diggings. If he does decide to peg
 a claim and work it he will put up a wattle and daub hut and the children and I will join him
 there. But until such time as he strikes gold I shall have to remain here on the farm and
 ‘Keep the Home Fires Burning’.Now don’t go and waste pity on me. Women all over the country are having to 
 stay at home whilst their husbands search for a livelihood. I am better off than most
 because I have a comfortable little home and loyal servants and we still have enough
 capitol to keep the wolf from the door. Anyway this is the rainy season and hardly the
 best time to drag three small children around the sodden countryside on prospecting
 safaris.So I’ll stay here at home and hold thumbs that George makes a lucky strike. Heaps of love to all, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe Estate. 27th February 1936 Dearest Family, Well, George has gone but here we are quite safe and cosy. Kate is asleep and 
 Ann and Georgie are sprawled on the couch taking it in turns to enumerate the things
 God has made. Every now and again Ann bothers me with an awkward question. “Did
 God make spiders? Well what for? Did he make weeds? Isn’t He silly, mummy? She is
 becoming a very practical person. She sews surprisingly well for a four year old and has
 twice made cakes in the past week, very sweet and liberally coloured with cochineal and
 much appreciated by Georgie.I have been without George for a fortnight and have adapted myself to my new 
 life. The children are great company during the day and I have arranged my evenings so
 that they do not seem long. I am determined that when George comes home he will find
 a transformed wife. I read an article entitled ‘Are you the girl he married?’ in a magazine
 last week and took a good look in the mirror and decided that I certainly was not! Hair dry,
 skin dry, and I fear, a faint shadow on the upper lip. So now I have blown the whole of
 your Christmas Money Order on an order to a chemist in Dar es Salaam for hair tonic,
 face cream and hair remover and am anxiously awaiting the parcel.In the meantime, after tucking the children into bed at night, I skip on the verandah 
 and do the series of exercises recommended in the magazine article. After this exertion I
 have a leisurely bath followed by a light supper and then read or write letters to pass
 the time until Kate’s ten o’clock feed. I have arranged for Janey to sleep in the house.
 She comes in at 9.30 pm and makes up her bed on the living room floor by the fire.The days are by no means uneventful. The day before yesterday the biggest 
 troop of monkeys I have ever seen came fooling around in the trees and on the grass
 only a few yards from the house. These monkeys were the common grey monkeys
 with black faces. They came in all sizes and were most entertaining to watch. Ann and
 Georgie had a great time copying their antics and pulling faces at the monkeys through
 the bedroom windows which I hastily closed.Thomas, our headman, came running up and told me that this troop of monkeys 
 had just raided his maize shamba and asked me to shoot some of them. I would not of
 course do this. I still cannot bear to kill any animal, but I fired a couple of shots in the air
 and the monkeys just melted away. It was fantastic, one moment they were there and
 the next they were not. Ann and Georgie thought I had been very unkind to frighten the
 poor monkeys but honestly, when I saw what they had done to my flower garden, I
 almost wished I had hardened my heart and shot one or two.The children are all well but Ann gave me a nasty fright last week. I left Ann and 
 Georgie at breakfast whilst I fed Fanny, our bull terrier on the back verandah. Suddenly I
 heard a crash and rushed inside to find Ann’s chair lying on its back and Ann beside it on
 the floor perfectly still and with a paper white face. I shouted for Janey to bring water and
 laid Ann flat on the couch and bathed her head and hands. Soon she sat up with a wan
 smile and said “I nearly knocked my head off that time, didn’t I.” She must have been
 standing on the chair and leaning against the back. Our brick floors are so terribly hard that
 she might have been seriously hurt.However she was none the worse for the fall, but Heavens, what an anxiety kids 
 are.Lots of love, 
 EleanorMchewe Estate. 12th March 1936 Dearest Family, It was marvellous of you to send another money order to replace the one I spent 
 on cosmetics. With this one I intend to order boots for both children as a protection from
 snake bite, though from my experience this past week the threat seems to be to the
 head rather than the feet. I was sitting on the couch giving Kate her morning milk from a
 cup when a long thin snake fell through the reed ceiling and landed with a thud just behind
 the couch. I shouted “Nyoka, Nyoka!” (Snake,Snake!) and the houseboy rushed in with
 a stick and killed the snake. I then held the cup to Kate’s mouth again but I suppose in
 my agitation I tipped it too much because the baby choked badly. She gasped for
 breath. I quickly gave her a sharp smack on the back and a stream of milk gushed
 through her mouth and nostrils and over me. Janey took Kate from me and carried her
 out into the fresh air on the verandah and as I anxiously followed her through the door,
 another long snake fell from the top of the wall just missing me by an inch or so. Luckily
 the houseboy still had the stick handy and dispatched this snake also.The snakes were a pair of ‘boomslangs’, not nice at all, and all day long I have 
 had shamba boys coming along to touch hands and say “Poli Memsahib” – “Sorry
 madam”, meaning of course ‘Sorry you had a fright.’Apart from that one hectic morning this has been a quiet week. Before George 
 left for the Lupa he paid off most of the farm hands as we can now only afford a few
 labourers for the essential work such as keeping the weeds down in the coffee shamba.
 There is now no one to keep the grass on the farm roads cut so we cannot use the pram
 when we go on our afternoon walks. Instead Janey carries Kate in a sling on her back.
 Janey is a very clean slim woman, and her clothes are always spotless, so Kate keeps
 cool and comfortable. Ann and Georgie always wear thick overalls on our walks as a
 protection against thorns and possible snakes. We usually make our way to the
 Mchewe River where Ann and Georgie paddle in the clear cold water and collect shiny
 stones.The cosmetics parcel duly arrived by post from Dar es Salaam so now I fill the 
 evenings between supper and bed time attending to my face! The much advertised
 cream is pink and thick and feels revolting. I smooth it on before bedtime and keep it on
 all night. Just imagine if George could see me! The advertisements promise me a skin
 like a rose in six weeks. What a surprise there is in store for George!You will have been wondering what has happened to George. Well on the Lupa 
 he heard rumours of a new gold strike somewhere in the Sumbawanga District. A couple
 of hundred miles from here I think, though I am not sure where it is and have no one to
 ask. You look it up on the map and tell me. John Molteno is also interested in this and
 anxious to have it confirmed so he and George have come to an agreement. John
 Molteno provided the porters for the journey together with prospecting tools and
 supplies but as he cannot leave his claims, or his gold buying business, George is to go
 on foot to the area of the rumoured gold strike and, if the strike looks promising will peg
 claims in both their names.The rainy season is now at its height and the whole countryside is under water. All 
 roads leading to the area are closed to traffic and, as there are few Europeans who
 would attempt the journey on foot, George proposes to get a head start on them by
 making this uncomfortable safari. I have just had my first letter from George since he left
 on this prospecting trip. It took ages to reach me because it was sent by runner to
 Abercorn in Northern Rhodesia, then on by lorry to Mpika where it was put on a plane
 for Mbeya. George writes the most charming letters which console me a little upon our
 all too frequent separations.His letter was cheerful and optimistic, though reading between the lines I should 
 say he had a grim time. He has reached Sumbawanga after ‘a hell of a trip’, to find that
 the rumoured strike was at Mpanda and he had a few more days of foot safari ahead.
 He had found the trip from the Lupa even wetter than he had expected. The party had
 three days of wading through swamps sometimes waist deep in water. Of his sixteen
 porters, four deserted an the second day out and five others have had malaria and so
 been unable to carry their loads. He himself is ‘thin but very fit’, and he sounds full of
 beans and writes gaily of the marvellous holiday we will have if he has any decent luck! I
 simply must get that mink and diamonds complexion.The frustrating thing is that I cannot write back as I have no idea where George is 
 now.With heaps of love, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe Estate. 24th March 1936 Dearest Family, 
 How kind you are. Another parcel from home. Although we are very short
 of labourers I sent a special runner to fetch it as Ann simply couldn’t bear the suspense
 of waiting to see Brenda, “My new little girl with plaits.” Thank goodness Brenda is
 unbreakable. I could not have born another tragedy. She really is an exquisite little doll
 and has hardly been out of Ann’s arms since arrival. She showed Brenda proudly to all
 the staff. The kitchen boy’s face was a study. His eyes fairly came out on sticks when he
 saw the dolls eyes not only opening and shutting, but moving from side to side in that
 incredibly lifelike way. Georgie loves his little model cars which he carries around all day
 and puts under his pillow at night.As for me, I am enchanted by my very smart new frock. Janey was so lavish with 
 her compliments when I tried the frock on, that in a burst of generosity I gave her that
 rather tartish satin and lace trousseau nighty, and she was positively enthralled. She
 wore it that very night when she appeared as usual to doss down by the fire.
 By the way it was Janey’s turn to have a fright this week. She was in the
 bathroom washing the children’s clothes in an outsize hand basin when it happened. As
 she took Georgie’s overalls from the laundry basket a large centipede ran up her bare
 arm. Luckily she managed to knock the centipede off into the hot water in the hand basin.
 It was a brute, about six inches long of viciousness with a nasty sting. The locals say that
 the bite is much worse than a scorpions so Janey had a lucky escape.Kate cut her first two teeth yesterday and will, I hope, sleep better now. I don’t 
 feel that pink skin food is getting a fair trial with all those broken nights. There is certainly
 no sign yet of ‘The skin he loves to touch”. Kate, I may say, is rosy and blooming. She
 can pull herself upright providing she has something solid to hold on to. She is so plump
 I have horrible visions of future bow legs so I push her down, but she always bobs up
 again.Both Ann and Georgie are mad on books. Their favourites are ‘Barbar and 
 Celeste” and, of all things, ‘Struvel Peter’ . They listen with absolute relish to the sad tale
 of Harriet who played with matches.I have kept a laugh for the end. I am hoping that it will not be long before George 
 comes home and thought it was time to take the next step towards glamour, so last
 Wednesday after lunch I settled the children on their beds and prepared to remove the ,
 to me, obvious down on my upper lip. (George always loyally says that he can’t see
 any.) Well I got out the tube of stuff and carefully followed the directions. I smoothed a
 coating on my upper lip. All this was watched with great interest by the children, including
 the baby, who stood up in her cot for a better view. Having no watch, I had propped
 the bedroom door open so that I could time the operation by the cuckoo clock in the
 living room. All the children’s surprised comments fell on deaf ears. I would neither talk
 nor smile for fear of cracking the hair remover which had set hard. The set time was up
 and I was just about to rinse the remover off when Kate slipped, knocking her head on
 the corner of the cot. I rushed to the rescue and precious seconds ticked off whilst I
 pacified her.So, my dears, when I rinsed my lip, not only the plaster and the hair came away 
 but the skin as well and now I really did have a Ronald Coleman moustache – a crimson
 one. I bathed it, I creamed it, powdered it but all to no avail. Within half an hour my lip
 had swollen until I looked like one of those Duckbilled West African women. Ann’s
 comments, “Oh Mummy, you do look funny. Georgie, doesn’t Mummy look funny?”
 didn’t help to soothe me and the last straw was that just then there was the sound of a car drawing up outside – the first car I had heard for months. Anyway, thank heaven, it
 was not George, but the representative of a firm which sells agricultural machinery and
 farm implements, looking for orders. He had come from Dar es Salaam and had not
 heard that all the planters from this district had left their farms. Hospitality demanded that I
 should appear and offer tea. I did not mind this man because he was a complete
 stranger and fat, middle aged and comfortable. So I gave him tea, though I didn’t
 attempt to drink any myself, and told him the whole sad tale.Fortunately much of the swelling had gone next day and only a brown dryness 
 remained. I find myself actually hoping that George is delayed a bit longer. Of one thing
 I am sure. If ever I grow a moustache again, it stays!Heaps of love from a sadder but wiser, 
 EleanorMchewe Estate. 3rd April 1936 Dearest Family, Sound the trumpets, beat the drums. George is home again. The safari, I am sad 
 to say, was a complete washout in more ways than one. Anyway it was lovely to be
 together again and we don’t yet talk about the future. The home coming was not at all as
 I had planned it. I expected George to return in our old A.C. car which gives ample
 warning of its arrival. I had meant to wear my new frock and make myself as glamourous
 as possible, with our beautiful babe on one arm and our other jewels by my side.
 This however is what actually happened. Last Saturday morning at about 2 am , I
 thought I heard someone whispering my name. I sat up in bed, still half asleep, and
 there was George at the window. He was thin and unshaven and the tiredest looking
 man I have ever seen. The car had bogged down twenty miles back along the old Lupa
 Track, but as George had had no food at all that day, he decided to walk home in the
 bright moonlight.This is where I should have served up a tasty hot meal but alas, there was only 
 the heal of a loaf and no milk because, before going to bed I had given the remaining
 milk to the dog. However George seemed too hungry to care what he ate. He made a
 meal off a tin of bully, a box of crustless cheese and the bread washed down with cup
 after cup of black tea. Though George was tired we talked for hours and it was dawn
 before we settled down to sleep.During those hours of talk George described his nightmarish journey. He started 
 up the flooded Rukwa Valley and there were days of wading through swamp and mud
 and several swollen rivers to cross. George is a strong swimmer and the porters who
 were recruited in that area, could also swim. There remained the problem of the stores
 and of Kianda the houseboy who cannot swim. For these they made rough pole rafts
 which they pulled across the rivers with ropes. Kianda told me later that he hopes never
 to make such a journey again. He swears that the raft was submerged most of the time
 and that he was dragged through the rivers underwater! You should see the state of
 George’s clothes which were packed in a supposedly water tight uniform trunk. The
 whole lot are mud stained and mouldy.To make matters more trying for George he was obliged to live mostly on 
 porters rations, rice and groundnut oil which he detests. As all the district roads were
 closed the little Indian Sores in the remote villages he passed had been unable to
 replenish their stocks of European groceries. George would have been thinner had it not
 been for two Roman Catholic missions enroute where he had good meals and dry
 nights. The Fathers are always wonderfully hospitable to wayfarers irrespective of
 whether or not they are Roman Catholics. George of course is not a Catholic. One finds
 the Roman Catholic missions right out in the ‘Blue’ and often on spots unhealthy to
 Europeans. Most of the Fathers are German or Dutch but they all speak a little English
 and in any case one can always fall back on Ki-Swahili.George reached his destination all right but it soon became apparent that reports 
 of the richness of the strike had been greatly exaggerated. George had decided that
 prospects were brighter on the Lupa than on the new strike so he returned to the Lupa
 by the way he had come and, having returned the borrowed equipment decided to
 make his way home by the shortest route, the old and now rarely used road which
 passes by the bottom of our farm.The old A.C. had been left for safe keeping at the Roman Catholic Galala 
 Mission 40 miles away, on George’s outward journey, and in this old car George, and
 the houseboy Kianda , started for home. The road was indescribably awful. There were long stretches that were simply one big puddle, in others all the soil had been washed
 away leaving the road like a rocky river bed. There were also patches where the tall
 grass had sprung up head high in the middle of the road,
 The going was slow because often the car bogged down because George had
 no wheel chains and he and Kianda had the wearisome business of digging her out. It
 was just growing dark when the old A.C. settled down determinedly in the mud for the
 last time. They could not budge her and they were still twenty miles from home. George
 decided to walk home in the moonlight to fetch help leaving Kianda in charge of the car
 and its contents and with George’s shot gun to use if necessary in self defence. Kianda
 was reluctant to stay but also not prepared to go for help whilst George remained with
 the car as lions are plentiful in that area. So George set out unarmed in the moonlight.
 Once he stopped to avoid a pride of lion coming down the road but he circled safely
 around them and came home without any further alarms.Kianda said he had a dreadful night in the car, “With lions roaming around the car 
 like cattle.” Anyway the lions did not take any notice of the car or of Kianda, and the next
 day George walked back with all our farm boys and dug and pushed the car out of the
 mud. He brought car and Kianda back without further trouble but the labourers on their
 way home were treed by the lions.The wet season is definitely the time to stay home. Lots and lots of love, 
 EleanorMchewe Estate. 30th April 1936 Dearest Family, Young George’s third birthday passed off very well yesterday. It started early in 
 the morning when he brought his pillow slip of presents to our bed. Kate was already
 there and Ann soon joined us. Young George liked all the presents you sent, especially
 the trumpet. It has hardly left his lips since and he is getting quite smart about the finger
 action.We had quite a party. Ann and I decorated the table with Christmas tree tinsel 
 and hung a bunch of balloons above it. Ann also decorated young George’s chair with
 roses and phlox from the garden. I had made and iced a fruit cake but Ann begged to
 make a plain pink cake. She made it entirely by herself though I stood by to see that
 she measured the ingredients correctly. When the cake was baked I mixed some soft
 icing in a jug and she poured it carefully over the cake smoothing the gaps with her
 fingers!During the party we had the gramophone playing and we pulled crackers and 
 wore paper hats and altogether had a good time. I forgot for a while that George is
 leaving again for the Lupa tomorrow for an indefinite time. He was marvellous at making
 young George’s party a gay one. You will have noticed the change from Georgie to
 young George. Our son declares that he now wants to be called George, “Like Dad”.
 He an Ann are a devoted couple and I am glad that there is only a fourteen
 months difference in their ages. They play together extremely well and are very
 independent which is just as well for little Kate now demands a lot of my attention. My
 garden is a real cottage garden and looks very gay and colourful. There are hollyhocks
 and Snapdragons, marigolds and phlox and of course the roses and carnations which, as
 you know, are my favourites. The coffee shamba does not look so good because the
 small labour force, which is all we can afford, cannot cope with all the weeds. You have
 no idea how things grow during the wet season in the tropics.Nothing alarming ever seems to happen when George is home, so I’m afraid this 
 letter is rather dull. I wanted you to know though, that largely due to all your gifts of toys
 and sweets, Georgie’s 3rd birthday party went with a bang.Your very affectionate, 
 EleanorMchewe Estate. 17th September 1936 Dearest Family, I am sorry to hear that Mummy worries about me so much. “Poor Eleanor”, 
 indeed! I have a quite exceptional husband, three lovely children, a dear little home and
 we are all well.It is true that I am in rather a rut but what else can we do? George comes
 home whenever he can and what excitement there is when he does come. He cannot
 give me any warning because he has to take advantage of chance lifts from the Diggings
 to Mbeya, but now that he is prospecting nearer home he usually comes walking over
 the hills. About 50 miles of rough going. Really and truly I am all right. Although our diet is
 monotonous we have plenty to eat. Eggs and milk are cheap and fruit plentiful and I
 have a good cook so can devote all my time to the children. I think it is because they are
 my constant companions that Ann and Georgie are so grown up for their years.
 I have no ayah at present because Janey has been suffering form rheumatism
 and has gone home for one of her periodic rests. I manage very well without her except
 in the matter of the afternoon walks. The outward journey is all right. George had all the
 grass cut on his last visit so I am able to push the pram whilst Ann, George and Fanny
 the dog run ahead. It is the uphill return trip that is so trying. Our walk back is always the
 same, down the hill to the river where the children love to play and then along the car
 road to the vegetable garden. I never did venture further since the day I saw a leopard
 jump on a calf. I did not tell you at the time as I thought you might worry. The cattle were
 grazing on a small knoll just off our land but near enough for me to have a clear view.
 Suddenly the cattle scattered in all directions and we heard the shouts of the herd boys
 and saw – or rather had the fleeting impression- of a large animal jumping on a calf. I
 heard the herd boy shout “Chui, Chui!” (leopard) and believe me, we turned in our
 tracks and made for home. To hasten things I picked up two sticks and told the children
 that they were horses and they should ride them home which they did with
 commendable speed.Ann no longer rides Joseph. He became increasingly bad tempered and a 
 nuisance besides. He took to rolling all over my flower beds though I had never seen
 him roll anywhere else. Then one day he kicked Ann in the chest, not very hard but
 enough to send her flying. Now George has given him to the native who sells milk to us
 and he seems quite happy grazing with the cattle.With love to you all, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe Estate. 2nd October 1936 Dearest Family, Since I last wrote George has been home and we had a lovely time as usual. 
 Whilst he was here the District Commissioner and his wife called. Mr Pollock told
 George that there is to be a big bush clearing scheme in some part of the Mbeya
 District to drive out Tsetse Fly. The game in the area will have to be exterminated and
 there will probably be a job for George shooting out the buffalo. The pay would be
 good but George says it is a beastly job. Although he is a professional hunter, he hates
 slaughter.Mrs P’s real reason for visiting the farm was to invite me to stay at her home in 
 Mbeya whilst she and her husband are away in Tukuyu. Her English nanny and her small
 daughter will remain in Mbeya and she thought it might be a pleasant change for us and
 a rest for me as of course Nanny will do the housekeeping. I accepted the invitation and I
 think I will go on from there to Tukuyu and visit my friend Lillian Eustace for a fortnight.
 She has given us an open invitation to visit her at any time.I had a letter from Dr Eckhardt last week, telling me that at a meeting of all the 
 German Settlers from Mbeya, Tukuyu and Mbosi it had been decided to raise funds to
 build a school at Mbeya. They want the British Settlers to co-operate in this and would
 be glad of a subscription from us. I replied to say that I was unable to afford a
 subscription at present but would probably be applying for a teaching job.
 The Eckhardts are the leaders of the German community here and are ardent
 Nazis. For this reason they are unpopular with the British community but he is the only
 doctor here and I must say they have been very decent to us. Both of them admire
 George. George has still not had any luck on the Lupa and until he makes a really
 promising strike it is unlikely that the children and I will join him. There is no fresh milk there
 and vegetables and fruit are imported from Mbeya and Iringa and are very expensive.
 George says “You wouldn’t be happy on the diggings anyway with a lot of whores and
 their bastards!”Time ticks away very pleasantly here. Young George and Kate are blooming 
 and I keep well. Only Ann does not look well. She is growing too fast and is listless and
 pale. If I do go to Mbeya next week I shall take her to the doctor to be overhauled.
 We do not go for our afternoon walks now that George has returned to the Lupa.
 That leopard has been around again and has killed Tubbage that cowardly Alsatian. We
 gave him to the village headman some months ago. There is no danger to us from the
 leopard but I am terrified it might get Fanny, who is an excellent little watchdog and
 dearly loved by all of us. Yesterday I sent a note to the Boma asking for a trap gun and
 today the farm boys are building a trap with logs.I had a mishap this morning in the garden. I blundered into a nest of hornets and 
 got two stings in the left arm above the elbow. Very painful at the time and the place is
 still red and swollen.Much love to you all, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe Estate. 10th October 1936 Dearest Family, Well here we are at Mbeya, comfortably installed in the District Commissioner’s 
 house. It is one of two oldest houses in Mbeya and is a charming gabled place with tiled
 roof. The garden is perfectly beautiful. I am enjoying the change very much. Nanny
 Baxter is very entertaining. She has a vast fund of highly entertaining tales of the goings
 on amongst the British Aristocracy, gleaned it seems over the nursery teacup in many a
 Stately Home. Ann and Georgie are enjoying the company of other children.
 People are very kind about inviting us out to tea and I gladly accept these
 invitations but I have turned down invitations to dinner and one to a dance at the hotel. It
 is no fun to go out at night without George. There are several grass widows at the pub
 whose husbands are at the diggings. They have no inhibitions about parties.
 I did have one night and day here with George, he got the chance of a lift and
 knowing that we were staying here he thought the chance too good to miss. He was
 also anxious to hear the Doctor’s verdict on Ann. I took Ann to hospital on my second
 day here. Dr Eckhardt said there was nothing specifically wrong but that Ann is a highly
 sensitive type with whom the tropics does not agree. He advised that Ann should
 spend a year in a more temperate climate and that the sooner she goes the better. I felt
 very discouraged to hear this and was most relieved when George turned up
 unexpectedly that evening. He phoo-hood Dr Eckhardt’s recommendation and next
 morning called in Dr Aitkin, the Government Doctor from Chunya and who happened to
 be in Mbeya.Unfortunately Dr Aitkin not only confirmed Dr Eckhardt’s opinion but said that he 
 thought Ann should stay out of the tropics until she had passed adolescence. I just don’t
 know what to do about Ann. She is a darling child, very sensitive and gentle and a
 lovely companion to me. Also she and young George are inseparable and I just cannot
 picture one without the other. I know that you would be glad to have Ann but how could
 we bear to part with her?Your worried but affectionate, 
 Eleanor.Tukuyu. 23rd October 1936 Dearest Family, As you see we have moved to Tukuyu and we are having a lovely time with 
 Lillian Eustace. She gave us such a warm welcome and has put herself out to give us
 every comfort. She is a most capable housekeeper and I find her such a comfortable
 companion because we have the same outlook in life. Both of us are strictly one man
 women and that is rare here. She has a two year old son, Billy, who is enchanted with
 our rolly polly Kate and there are other children on the station with whom Ann and
 Georgie can play. Lillian engaged a temporary ayah for me so I am having a good rest.
 All the children look well and Ann in particular seems to have benefited by the
 change to a cooler climate. She has a good colour and looks so well that people all
 exclaim when I tell them, that two doctors have advised us to send Ann out of the
 country. Perhaps after all, this holiday in Tukuyu will set her up.We had a trying journey from Mbeya to Tukuyu in the Post Lorry. The three 
 children and I were squeezed together on the front seat between the African driver on
 one side and a vast German on the other. Both men smoked incessantly – the driver
 cigarettes, and the German cheroots. The cab was clouded with a blue haze. Not only
 that! I suddenly felt a smarting sensation on my right thigh. The driver’s cigarette had
 burnt a hole right through that new checked linen frock you sent me last month.
 I had Kate on my lap all the way but Ann and Georgie had to stand against the
 windscreen all the way. The fat German offered to take Ann on his lap but she gave him
 a very cold “No thank you.” Nor did I blame her. I would have greatly enjoyed the drive
 under less crowded conditions. The scenery is gorgeous. One drives through very high
 country crossing lovely clear streams and at one point through rain forest. As it was I
 counted the miles and how thankful I was to see the end of the journey.
 In the days when Tanganyika belonged to the Germans, Tukuyu was the
 administrative centre for the whole of the Southern Highlands Province. The old German
 Fort is still in use as Government offices and there are many fine trees which were
 planted by the Germans. There is a large prosperous native population in this area.
 They go in chiefly for coffee and for bananas which form the basis of their diet.
 There are five British married couples here and Lillian and I go out to tea most
 mornings. In the afternoon there is tennis or golf. The gardens here are beautiful because
 there is rain or at least drizzle all the year round. There are even hedge roses bordering
 some of the district roads. When one walks across the emerald green golf course or
 through the Boma gardens, it is hard to realise that this gentle place is Tropical Africa.
 ‘Such a green and pleasant land’, but I think I prefer our corner of Tanganyika.Much love, 
 Eleanor.Mchewe. 12th November 1936 Dearest Family, We had a lovely holiday but it is so nice to be home again, especially as Laza, 
 the local Nimrod, shot that leopard whilst we were away (with his muzzleloader gun). He
 was justly proud of himself, and I gave him a tip so that he could buy some native beer
 for a celebration. I have never seen one of theses parties but can hear the drums and
 sounds of merrymaking, especially on moonlight nights.Our house looks so fresh and uncluttered. Whilst I was away, the boys 
 whitewashed the house and my houseboy had washed all the curtains, bedspreads,
 and loose covers and watered the garden. If only George were here it would be
 heaven.Ann looked so bonny at Tukuyu that I took her to the Government Doctor there 
 hoping that he would find her perfectly healthy, but alas he endorsed the finding of the
 other two doctors so, when an opportunity offers, I think I shall have to send Ann down
 to you for a long holiday from the Tropics. Mother-in-law has offered to fetch her next
 year but England seems so far away. With you she will at least be on the same
 continent.I left the children for the first time ever, except for my stay in hospital when Kate 
 was born, to go on an outing to Lake Masoko in the Tukuyu district, with four friends.
 Masoko is a beautiful, almost circular crater lake and very very deep. A detachment of
 the King’s African Rifles are stationed there and occupy the old German barracks
 overlooking the lake.We drove to Masoko by car and spent the afternoon there as guests of two 
 British Army Officers. We had a good tea and the others went bathing in the lake but i
 could not as I did not have a costume. The Lake was as beautiful as I had been lead to
 imagine and our hosts were pleasant but I began to grow anxious as the afternoon
 advanced and my friends showed no signs of leaving. I was in agonies when they
 accepted an invitation to stay for a sundowner. We had this in the old German beer
 garden overlooking the Lake. It was beautiful but what did I care. I had promised the
 children that I would be home to give them their supper and put them to bed. When I
 did at length return to Lillian’s house I found the situation as I had expected. Ann, with her
 imagination had come to the conclusion that I never would return. She had sobbed
 herself into a state of exhaustion. Kate was screaming in sympathy and George 2 was
 very truculent. He wouldn’t even speak to me. Poor Lillian had had a trying time.
 We did not return to Mbeya by the Mail Lorry. Bill and Lillian drove us across to
 Mbeya in their new Ford V8 car. The children chattered happily in the back of the car
 eating chocolate and bananas all the way. I might have known what would happen! Ann
 was dreadfully and messily car sick.I engaged the Mbeya Hotel taxi to drive us out to the farm the same afternoon 
 and I expect it will be a long time before we leave the farm again.Lots and lots of love to all, 
 Eleanor.Chunya 27th November 1936 Dearest Family, You will be surprised to hear that we are all together now on the Lupa goldfields. 
 I have still not recovered from my own astonishment at being here. Until last Saturday
 night I never dreamed of this move. At about ten o’clock I was crouched in the inglenook
 blowing on the embers to make a fire so that I could heat some milk for Kate who is
 cutting teeth and was very restless. Suddenly I heard a car outside. I knew it must be
 George and rushed outside storm lamp in hand. Sure enough, there was George
 standing by a strange car, and beaming all over his face. “Something for you my love,”
 he said placing a little bundle in my hand. It was a knotted handkerchief and inside was a
 fine gold nugget.George had that fire going in no time, Kate was given the milk and half an aspirin 
 and settles down to sleep, whilst George and I sat around for an hour chatting over our
 tea. He told me that he had borrowed the car from John Molteno and had come to fetch
 me and the children to join him on the diggings for a while. It seems that John, who has a
 camp at Itewe, a couple of miles outside the township of Chunya, the new
 Administrative Centre of the diggings, was off to the Cape to visit his family for a few
 months. John had asked George to run his claims in his absence and had given us the
 loan of his camp and his car.George had found the nugget on his own claim but he is not too elated because 
 he says that one good month on the diggings is often followed by several months of
 dead loss. However, I feel hopeful, we have had such a run of bad luck that surely it is
 time for the tide to change. George spent Sunday going over the farm with Thomas, the
 headman, and giving him instructions about future work whilst I packed clothes and
 kitchen equipment. I have brought our ex-kitchenboy Kesho Kutwa with me as cook and
 also Janey, who heard that we were off to the Lupa and came to offer her services once
 more as ayah. Janey’s ex-husband Abel is now cook to one of the more successful
 diggers and I think she is hoping to team up with him again.The trip over the Mbeya-Chunya pass was new to me and I enjoyed it very 
 much indeed. The road winds over the mountains along a very high escarpment and
 one looks down on the vast Usangu flats stretching far away to the horizon. At the
 highest point the road rises to about 7000 feet, and this was too much for Ann who was
 leaning against the back of my seat. She was very thoroughly sick, all over my hair.
 This camp of John Molteno’s is very comfortable. It consists of two wattle and
 daub buildings built end to end in a clearing in the miombo bush. The main building
 consists of a large living room, a store and an office, and the other of one large bedroom
 and a small one separated by an area for bathing. Both buildings are thatched. There are
 no doors, and there are no windows, but these are not necessary because one wall of
 each building is built up only a couple of feet leaving a six foot space for light and air. As
 this is the dry season the weather is pleasant. The air is fresh and dry but not nearly so
 hot as I expected.Water is a problem and must be carried long distances in kerosene tins. 
 vegetables and fresh butter are brought in a van from Iringa and Mbeya Districts about
 once a fortnight. I have not yet visited Chunya but I believe it is as good a shopping
 centre as Mbeya so we will be able to buy all the non perishable food stuffs we need.
 What I do miss is the fresh milk. The children are accustomed to drinking at least a pint of
 milk each per day but they do not care for the tinned variety.Ann and young George love being here. The camp is surrounded by old 
 prospecting trenches and they spend hours each day searching for gold in the heaps of gravel. Sometimes they find quartz pitted with little spots of glitter and they bring them
 to me in great excitement. Alas it is only Mica. We have two neighbours. The one is a
 bearded Frenchman and the other an Australian. I have not yet met any women.
 George looks very sunburnt and extremely fit and the children also look well.
 George and I have decided that we will keep Ann with us until my Mother-in-law comes
 out next year. George says that in spite of what the doctors have said, he thinks that the
 shock to Ann of being separated from her family will do her more harm than good. She
 and young George are inseparable and George thinks it would be best if both
 George and Ann return to England with my Mother-in-law for a couple of years. I try not
 to think at all about the breaking up of the family.Much love to all, 
 Eleanor.
- 
		AuthorSearch Results

